Selected quad for the lemma: work_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
work_n good_a grace_n justification_n 9,536 5 9.0702 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A52074 The gospel-mystery of sanctification opened in sundry practical directions suited especially to the case of those who labour under the guilt and power of indwelling sin : to which is added a sermon of justification / by Mr. Walter Marshal ... Marshall, Walter, 1628-1680. 1692 (1692) Wing M809; ESTC R6409 215,255 390

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

by_o mere_a conviction_n of_o the_o truth_n such_o as_o wicked_a man_n and_o devil_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o when_o they_o have_v rather_o it_o be_v false_a neither_o must_v our_o believe_v on_o christ_n be_v only_o constrain_v for_o fear_n of_o damnation_n without_o any_o hearty_a love_n and_o desire_n towards_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o but_o we_o must_v receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o relish_v the_o goodness_n and_o excellency_n of_o it_o and_o we_o must_v account_v all_o thing_n loss_n for_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n and_o count_v they_o but_o dung_n that_o we_o may_v win_v christ_n and_o be_v find_v in_o he_o 2_o thess_n 2.10_o phil._n 3.8_o 9_o esteem_v christ_n to_o be_v all_o our_o salvation_n and_o happiness_n col._n 3.11_o in_o who_o all_o fullness_n do_v dwell_v col._n 1.19_o and_o this_o love_n must_v be_v to_o every_o part_n of_o christ_n salvation_n to_o holiness_n as_o well_o as_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n we_o must_v desire_v earnest_o that_o god_n will_v create_v in_o we_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o right_a spirit_n as_o well_o as_o hide_v his_o face_n from_o our_o sin_n psal_n 51.9_o 10._o not_o like_o many_o that_o care_n for_o nothing_o in_o christ_n but_o only_a deliverance_n from_o hell_n bless_a be_v they_o that_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v fill_v mat._n 5.6_o the_o former_a of_o these_o act_n do_v not_o immediate_o unite_v we_o to_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v terminate_v only_o on_o the_o mean_n of_o conveyance_n the_o gospel_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o save_a act_n if_o it_o be_v right_o perform_v because_o it_o incline_v and_o dispose_v the_o soul_n to_o the_o latter_a act_n whereby_o christ_n himself_o be_v immediate_o receive_v into_o the_o heart_n he_o that_o believe_v the_o gospel_n with_o hearty_a love_n and_o like_n as_o the_o most_o excellent_a truth_n will_v certain_o with_o the_o like_a heartiness_n believe_v on_o christ_n for_o his_o salvation_n they_o that_o know_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v certain_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o psal_n 9.10_o therefore_o in_o scripture_n saving-faith_n be_v sometime_o describe_v by_o the_o former_a of_o these_o act_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a believe_v the_o gospel_n sometime_o by_o the_o latter_a as_o a_o believe_v on_o christ_n or_o in_o christ_n rom._n 10.9_o if_o thou_o believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v 11_o the_o scripture_n say_v whosoever_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a 1_o john_n 5.1_o whosoever_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n 13_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v unto_o you_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v know_v you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n let_v it_o be_v further_o observe_v that_o the_o second_o and_o principal_a of_o it_o believe_v on_o christ_n include_v believe_v on_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n because_o they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a god_n and_o they_o all_o concur_v in_o our_o salvation_n by_o christ_n as_o the_o only_a mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o in_o who_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o 2_o cor._n 1.20_o by_o he_o as_o mediator_n we_o believe_v on_o god_n that_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o give_v he_o glory_n that_o our_o faith_n and_o hope_n may_v be_v in_o god_n 1_o pet._n 1.21_o and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o trust_v on_o god_n or_o on_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v so_o high_o commend_v in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n especial_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o may_v easy_o appear_v by_o consider_v that_o it_o have_v the_o same_o cause_n effect_n object_n adjunct_n opposite_n and_o all_o the_o same_o circumstance_n except_v only_o that_o it_o have_v a_o respect_n to_o christ_n as_o promise_v before_o his_o come_v and_o now_o it_o respect_v he_o as_o already_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n believe_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o trust_v on_o his_o salvation_n be_v equivalent_a term_n that_o explain_v one_o another_o psal_n 78.22_o i_o confess_v that_o trust_v on_o thing_n see_v or_o know_v by_o the_o mere_a light_n of_o reason_n as_o on_o our_o own_o wisdom_n power_n riches_n on_o prince_n or_o any_o arm_n of_o flesh_n may_v not_o so_o proper_o be_v call_v believe_v on_o they_o but_o trust_v on_o a_o saviour_n as_o discover_v by_o a_o testimony_n be_v proper_o believe_v on_o he_o it_o be_v also_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v express_v by_o the_o term_n of_o rest_v rely_v lean_v stay_v ourselves_o on_o the_o lord_n because_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o expectation_n that_o be_v the_o proper_a act_n of_o hope_n though_o our_o believe_v and_o trust_v be_v for_o the_o present_a as_o well_o as_o future_a benefit_n of_o this_o salvation_n the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v so_o common_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o term_n of_o believe_v on_o christ_n may_v be_v probable_o because_o when_o that_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v write_v there_o be_v cause_n in_o a_o special_a manner_n to_o urge_v believe_v the_o testimony_n that_o be_v then_o new_o reveal_v by_o the_o gospel_n have_v thus_o explain_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n i_o come_v now_o to_o assert_v its_o proper_a use_n and_o office_n in_o our_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v the_o mean_n and_o instrument_n whereby_o we_o receive_v christ_n and_o all_o his_o fullness_n actual_o into_o our_o heart_n this_o excellent_a use_n and_o office_n of_o faith_n be_v encounter_v by_o a_o multitude_n of_o error_n man_n natural_o esteem_v that_o it_o be_v too_o small_a and_o slight_a a_o thing_n to_o produce_v so_o great_a effect_n as_o naaman_n think_v wash_v in_o jordan_n too_o small_a a_o matter_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o his_o leprosy_n they_o contemn_v the_o true_a mean_n of_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o straight_a gate_n because_o they_o seem_v too_o easy_a for_o such_o purpose_n and_o thereby_o they_o make_v the_o entrance_n not_o only_o difficult_a but_o impossible_a to_o themselves_o some_o will_v allow_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o sole_a condition_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o the_o instrument_n to_o receive_v it_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n maintain_v former_o by_o the_o protestant_n against_o the_o papist_n but_o they_o account_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a or_o effectual_a to_o sanctification_n but_o that_o it_o rather_o tend_v to_o licentiousness_n if_o it_o be_v not_o join_v with_o some_o other_o mean_n that_o may_v be_v powerful_a and_o effectual_a to_o procure_v a_o holy_a practice_n they_o commend_v this_o great_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n as_o a_o comfortable_a cordial_n for_o person_n upon_o their_o deathbed_n or_o in_o agony_n under_o terror_n of_o conscience_n but_o they_o account_v that_o it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o ordinary_a food_n and_o that_o it_o be_v wisdom_n in_o minister_n to_o preach_v it_o seldom_o and_o spare_o and_o not_o without_o some_o antidote_n or_o corrective_a to_o prevent_v the_o licentiousness_n to_o which_o it_o tend_v their_o common_a antidote_n or_o corrective_a be_v that_o sanctification_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o well_o as_o justification_n and_o that_o though_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n yet_o we_o be_v sanctify_v by_o our_o own_o performance_n of_o the_o law_n and_o so_o they_o set_v up_o salvation_n by_o work_n and_o make_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n to_o be_v of_o none_o effect_n and_o not_o at_o all_o comfortable_a if_o it_o have_v indeed_o such_o a_o malignant_a influence_n upon_o practice_n it_o can_v not_o be_v own_v as_o a_o doctrine_n proceed_v from_o the_o most_o holy_a god_n and_o all_o the_o comfort_n that_o it_o afford_v must_v needs_o be_v ungrounded_a and_o deceitful_a this_o consequence_n be_v well_o understand_v by_o some_o late_a refiner_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o new-model_n this_o doctrine_n and_o to_o make_v saving-faith_n to_o be_v only_o a_o condition_n to_o procure_v a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o our_o justification_n by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n which_o must_v be_v perform_v before_o we_o can_v lay_v any_o good_a claim_n to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o it_o and_o before_o we_o have_v any_o right_n to_o the_o actual_a receive_n of_o it_o and_o this_o they_o call_v a_o accept_n of_o or_o receive_v christ_n and_o that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o secure_v the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n by_o their_o conditional_a faith_n they_o will_v not_o have_v trust_v on_o god_n
gospel_n though_o they_o own_v it_o in_o profession_n never_o so_o high_o they_o act_n contrary_a to_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n for_o they_o will_v heal_v themselves_o and_o save_v themselves_o from_o the_o power_n and_o pollution_n of_o sin_n and_o prooure_n god_n favour_n by_o perform_v sincere_a obedience_n before_o they_o be_v come_v to_o christ_n the_o only_a physician_n and_o saviour_n they_o lay_v their_o own_o obedience_n low_a in_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o build_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o christ_n upon_o it_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o only_a foundation_n they_o will_v sanctify_v themselves_o before_o they_o have_v a_o sure_a interest_n in_o christ_n and_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v their_o own_o righteousness_n they_o do_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n rom._n 10.3,4_o sometime_o they_o will_v call_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n their_o legal_a righteousness_n that_o they_o may_v make_v room_n for_o a_o evangelical_n righteousness_n of_o their_o own_o work_n to_o be_v the_o immediate_a procure_a cause_n of_o their_o justification_n by_o christ_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n paul_n know_v no_o evangelical_n righteousness_n but_o that_o of_o christ_n which_o he_o call_v the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o law_n rom._n 3.21_o 22._o and_o not_o of_o the_o law_n phil._n 3.9_o thus_o they_o make_v void_a christ_n salvation_n while_o they_o pretend_v to_o own_v it_o and_o christ_n profit_v they_o nothing_o christ_n be_v become_v of_o none_o effect_v to_o they_o while_o they_o will_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n gal._n 5.2_o 4._o if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n we_o must_v own_v ourselves_o dead_a lose_a sinner_n that_o can_v have_v no_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n but_o he_o no_o life_n or_o ability_n to_o do_v good_a until_o god_n bring_v we_o to_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o they_o do_v also_o act_v contrary_a to_o salvation_n by_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o grace_n as_o the_o supreme_a cause_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o intervention_n of_o work_n give_v and_o accept_v by_o grace_n as_o the_o procure_a cause_n in_o which_o sense_n we_o may_v be_v save_v by_o grace_n though_o by_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n as_o a_o servant_n that_o have_v monies_n give_v he_o by_o his_o master_n to_o purchase_v a_o annuity_n of_o his_o master_n at_o a_o low_a rate_n may_v profess_v that_o he_o have_v a_o annuity_n give_v he_o free_o and_o yet_o that_o he_o have_v purchase_v it_o and_o may_v claim_v it_o as_o a_o due_a debt_n but_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n as_o the_o immediate_a and_o complete_a cause_n of_o our_o whole_a salvation_n exclude_v procurement_n of_o our_o salvation_n by_o the_o condition_n of_o work_n and_o claim_v it_o by_o any_o law_n as_o a_o due_a debt_n the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a opposition_n and_o utter_a irreconcileableness_n betwixt_o salvation_n by_o grace_n and_o work_n if_o by_o grace_n than_o it_o be_v no_o more_o of_o work_n otherwise_o grace_n be_v no_o more_o grace_n but_o if_o it_o be_v of_o work_n than_o it_o be_v no_o more_o of_o grace_n otherwise_o work_n be_v no_o more_o work_n rom._n 11.6_o so_o also_o there_o be_v a_o opposition_n betwixt_o a_o reward_n reckon_v of_o grace_n and_o of_o debt_n rom._n 4.4_o betwixt_o a_o promise_n of_o happiness_n by_o the_o law_n and_o by_o grace_n rom._n 4.13.16_o god_n be_v so_o jealous_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o freegrace_n that_o he_o will_v not_o save_v we_o by_o any_o work_n though_o of_o his_o own_o work_n in_o we_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v ephes_n 2.9_o he_o know_v that_o when_o he_o heal_v man_n by_o physic_n or_o maintain_v they_o by_o the_o labour_n of_o their_o hand_n they_o be_v prone_a to_o attribute_v the_o glory_n rather_o to_o the_o mean_n they_o use_v than_o to_o his_o sole_a bounty_n and_o goodness_n three_o they_o do_v also_o act_v contrary_a to_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o faith_n for_o as_o i_o have_v show_v already_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v require_v for_o our_o salvation_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o sense_n contrary_a to_o do_v good_a work_n as_o a_o condition_n to_o procure_v our_o salvation_n that_o so_o the_o true_a difference_n between_o the_o term_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v maintain_v believe_v be_v oppose_v to_o all_o work_n for_o salvation_n and_o the_o law_n of_o work_n to_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n rom._n 4.5_o &_o 3.27_o against_o antinomian_a error_n by_o make_v it_o the_o procure_a condition_n of_o their_o salvation_n when_o after_o all_o this_o ado_n the_o remedy_n be_v find_v to_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o the_o disease_n equal_o unserviceable_a and_o destructive_a to_o that_o great_a end_n for_o which_o they_o design_v it_o and_o that_o it_o have_v a_o antimonian_a effect_n and_o operation_n contrary_a to_o the_o power_n of_o godliness_n much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v for_o the_o confutation_n of_o this_o novel_a doctrine_n but_o if_o this_o one_o thing_n be_v well_o prove_v it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o zealous_a contriver_n of_o it_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o craft_n and_o angry_a with_o themselves_o and_o sorry_a that_o they_o have_v take_v so_o much_o pain_n and_o stretch_v their_o wit_n to_o maintain_v such_o a_o unprofitable_a unsanctify_a opinion_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o if_o i_o show_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o true_a holiness_n can_v possible_o be_v attain_v unto_o by_o seek_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n because_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o hereby_o those_o also_o may_v see_v their_o error_n that_o ascribe_v justification_n only_o to_o the_o gospel_n and_o sanctification_n to_o the_o law_n yet_o because_o those_o assertor_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n will_v hardly_o be_v persuade_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o way_n of_o the_o law_n of_o work_n i_o shall_v for_o their_o more_o full_a conviction_n sufficient_o manifest_a that_o it_o be_v of_o no_o other_o nature_n and_o operation_n than_o any_o other_o doctrine_n that_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o law_n and_o have_v no_o better_a fruit_n as_o i_o proceed_v to_o prove_v by_o the_o follow_a argument_n that_o holiness_n can_v be_v attain_v by_o seek_v it_o by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n that_o so_o it_o may_v appear_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v gospel_n doctrine_n first_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n be_v contrary_a and_o destructive_a to_o those_o necessary_a mean_n of_o a_o holy_a practice_n that_o have_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o forego_n direction_n and_o manifest_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o have_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o a_o hearty_a propensity_n to_o a_o holy_a practice_n can_v be_v attain_v without_o some_o good_a persuasion_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n by_o justification_n and_o of_o our_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o of_o sufficient_a strength_n both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v our_o duty_n and_o that_o these_o and_o all_o other_o endowment_n necessary_a to_o the_o same_o end_n be_v to_o be_v have_v only_o in_o christ_n by_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o and_o that_o christ_n himself_o with_o all_o his_o fullness_n be_v unite_v to_o we_o by_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o a_o condition_n to_o procure_v a_o right_n or_o title_n to_o christ_n but_o a_o instrument_n whereby_o we_o receive_v he_o actual_o into_o our_o heart_n by_o trust_v on_o he_o for_o all_o salvation_n free_o promise_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n all_o these_o mean_n of_o a_o holy_a practice_n be_v thing_n wherein_o our_o spiritual_a life_n and_o happiness_n do_v consist_v so_o that_o if_o we_o have_v they_o everlasting_a life_n be_v begin_v in_o we_o already_o and_o because_o they_o be_v the_o necessary_a mean_n of_o a_o holy_a practice_n therefore_o the_o beginning_n of_o everlasting_a life_n in_o we_o must_v not_o be_v place_v after_o such_o a_o practice_n as_o the_o fruit_n and_o consequent_a of_o it_o but_o must_v go_v before_o it_o as_o the_o cause_n before_o the_o effect_n now_o the_o term_n of_o the_o law_n be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o this_o method_n they_o place_v the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n before_o life_n and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v the_o mean_n and_o procure_a cause_n of_o life_n as_o moses_n describe_v they_o rom._n 10.5_o the_o man_n that_o do_v these_o thing_n shall_v live_v by_o they_o by_o these_o
have_v be_v one_o occasion_n of_o the_o prevail_a of_o heathenish_a jewish_a and_o popish_a superslition_n in_o the_o world_n we_o find_v by_o experience_n how_o popery_n fall_v in_o several_a nation_n in_o late_a year_n when_o the_o great_a pillar_n of_o it_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o work_n be_v overthrow_v by_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o if_o these_o legal_a zealot_n be_v force_v by_o strong_a conviction_n to_o endeavour_v the_o practice_n of_o spiritual_a duty_n for_o the_o quiet_v of_o their_o guilty_a conscience_n they_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o strive_v and_o labour_v earnest_o and_o even_o to_o macerate_v their_o body_n with_o fast_v that_o they_o may_v kill_v their_o lust_n but_o still_o their_o lust_n be_v alive_a and_o as_o strong_a as_o ever_o they_o be_v and_o do_v show_v forth_o their_o enmity_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n by_o inward_a fret_a repine_a and_o grudge_v at_o it_o as_o a_o grievous_a task-mastertho_a '_o a_o slavish_a fear_n restrain_v their_o gross_a outward_a act_n and_o if_o once_o these_o zealot_n be_v enlighten_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o spiritual_a nature_n of_o the_o law_n to_o discern_v that_o god_n reject_v all_o their_o slavish_a service_n and_o will_v not_o own_v it_o for_o sincere_a obedience_n than_o they_o fall_v into_o despair_n of_o their_o salvation_n because_o they_o see_v they_o have_v fail_v in_o their_o high_a attempt_n to_o perform_v the_o condition_n and_o then_o they_o can_v easy_o discover_v themselves_o that_o their_o heart_n swell_v in_o anger_n and_o manifest_a hatred_n against_o the_o law_n yea_o and_o against_o god_n and_o christ_n for_o prescribe_v such_o hard_a condition_n of_o salvation_n which_o they_o can_v keep_v and_o yet_o expect_v to_o be_v damn_v eternal_o for_o break_v of_o they_o this_o fill_v they_o with_o blasphemous_a thought_n against_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o they_o can_v hardly_o refrain_v from_o blaspheme_v with_o their_o tongue_n and_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o this_o horrible_a condition_n if_o god_n do_v not_o in_o mercy_n discover_v to_o they_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o freegrace_n through_o faith_n alone_o they_o will_v endeavour_v if_o they_o can_v to_o sear_v their_o conscience_n past_o feeling_n of_o sin_n and_o full_o to_o abandon_v all_o religion_n which_o have_v prove_v such_o a_o unsufferable_a torment_n to_o they_o or_o if_o they_o can_v sear_v their_o conscience_n some_o of_o they_o be_v easy_o prevail_v over_o by_o satan_n rather_o to_o murder_v themselves_o than_o to_o live_v long_o in_o the_o hatred_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o continual_a horror_n of_o conscience_n this_o be_v the_o pestilent_a effect_n of_o legal-doctrine_n upon_o a_o carnal_a heart_n that_o do_v but_o rouse_v up_o and_o terrible_o enrage_v the_o sleep_a lion_n our_o sinful_a gorruption_n instead_o of_o kill_v of_o it_o as_o be_v too_o evident_a by_o the_o sad_a experience_n of_o many_o that_o have_v endeavour_v with_o all_o their_o might_n to_o practise_v it_o and_o by_o the_o scripture_n that_o show_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n why_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o therefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o sincere_a obedience_n that_o be_v invent_v against_o antinomianism_n may_v well_o be_v rank_v among_o the_o worst_a antinomian_a error_n for_o my_o part_n i_o hate_v it_o with_o perfect_a hatred_n and_o count_v it_o my_o enemy_n as_o i_o have_v find_v it_o to_o be_v and_o i_o have_v find_v by_o some_o good_a experience_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o lesson_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o way_n to_o be_v free_v from_o the_o mastery_n and_o dominion_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o to_o be_v under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n rom._n 6.15_o six_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o work_n be_v blast_v by_o the_o curse_n denounce_v against_o the_o first_o adam_n sin_n so_o that_o now_o it_o can_v work_v life_n in_o we_o or_o holiness_n but_o only_a death_n for_o the_o law_n which_o require_v both_o sincere_a and_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v know_v to_o adam_n at_o his_o first_o creation_n as_o the_o mean_n of_o continue_v the_o happy_a life_n that_o be_v then_o bestow_v upon_o he_o and_o it_o will_v have_v be_v effectual_a for_o this_o end_n if_o he_o have_v not_o transgress_v in_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n but_o when_o he_o have_v once_o bring_v himself_o and_o his_o posterity_n under_o the_o terrible_a sentence_n thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v gen._n 2.17_o all_o that_o knowledge_n of_o god_n or_o his_o law_n that_o before_o wrought_v for_o continuance_n of_o life_n be_v turn_v by_o that_o curse_a sentence_n the_o contrary_a way_n to_o work_v for_o his_o death_n even_o for_o the_o death_n of_o his_o soul_n in_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o death_n of_o his_o body_n and_o therefore_o it_o quick_o move_v he_o to_o hide_v himself_o from_o god_n as_o a_o enemy_n it_o be_v as_o if_o god_n shall_v say_v all_z the_o light_n and_o knowledge_n that_o thou_o have_v shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o continue_v thy_o life_n or_o restore_v it_o but_o it_o shall_v rather_o tend_v to_o thy_o death_n therefore_o while_o we_o continue_v in_o our_o natural_a state_n under_o the_o first_o adam_n gild_n and_o curse_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n yea_o and_o all_o such_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o attribute_n as_o natural_a man_n may_v attain_v to_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n accurse_v to_o we_o and_o see_v man_n do_v not_o use_v his_o natural_a knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n aright_o god_n be_v resolve_v to_o revenge_v the_o abuse_n of_o it_o by_o give_v we_o salvation_n in_o a_o way_n contrary_a to_o it_o that_o seem_v foolishness_n to_o the_o natural_a man_n and_o whole_o to_o abolish_v the_o way_n of_o live_v by_o any_o of_o our_o work_n or_o by_o any_o wisdom_n or_o knowledge_n that_o the_o naturalman_n can_v attain_v unto_o for_o it_o be_v write_v i_o will_v destrey_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o will_v bring_v to_o nothing_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o prudent_a have_v not_o god_n make_v foolish_a the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n for_o after_o that_o in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n the_o world_n by_o wisdom_n know_v not_o god_n it_o please_v god_n by_o the_o foolishness_n of_o preach_v to_o save_v they_o that_o believe_v 1_o cor._n 1.19_o 20_o 21._o hence_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o no_o truth_n know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n can_v be_v a_o effectual_a principle_n or_o motive_n to_o work_v holiness_n in_o we_o and_o gospel-principle_n and_o motive_n be_v but_o abuse_v when_o they_o be_v apply_v to_o a_o legal-way_n of_o salvation_n seven_o the_o end_n which_o god_n aim_v at_o in_o give_v the_o law_n by_o moses_n be_v not_o that_o any_o shall_v ever_o attain_v to_o holiness_n or_o salvation_n by_o the_o condition_n of_o perfect_a or_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o it_o though_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o way_n of_o salvation_n at_o that_o time_n it_o must_v have_v consist_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o law_n which_o be_v then_o give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o life_n as_o well_o as_o a_o covenant_n there_o be_v another_o covenant_n make_v before_o that_o time_n with_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n promise_v all_o blessing_n free_o through_o christ_n the_o promise_a seed_n by_o which_o only_o they_o be_v to_o be_v save_v and_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o law_n be_v add_v that_o they_o might-see_a their_o sinfulness_n and_o subjection_n to_o death_n and_o wrath_n and_o the_o impossibility_n of_o attain_v to_o life_n or_o holiness_n by_o their_o work_n and_o be_v force_v to_o trust_v on_o the_o free_a promise_n only_o for_o all_o their_o salvation_n and_o that_o sin_n may_v be_v restrain_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n until_o the_o come_n of_o that_o promise_a seed_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o more_o plentiful_a pour_v out_o of_o the_o sanctify_a spirit_n by_o he_o this_o the_o apostle_n paul_n show_v large_o gal._n 3.15_o to_o 24._o rom._n 5.20_o 21._o &_o rom._n 10.3_o 4._o none_o of_o the_o israelite_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v ever_o save_v by_o the_o sinai-covenant_n neither_o do_v any_o of_o they_o ever_o attain_v to_o holiness_n by_o the_o term_n of_o it_o some_o of_o they_o do_v indeed_o perform_v the_o commandment_n of_o it_o sincere_o though_o imperfect_o but_o those_o be_v first_o justify_v and_o make_v partaker_n of_o life_n and_o holiness_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o better_a covenant_n make_v with_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n which_o be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n with_o the_o new-covenant_n or_o testament_n establish_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o that_o better_a covenant_n the_o
all_o be_v give_v to_o we_o at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n and_o i_o think_v enough_o have_v be_v say_v already_o to_o show_v in_o what_o order_n god_n bring_v we_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n he_o make_v we_o first_o to_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n as_o branch_n in_o the_o vine_n that_o we_o may_v bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n joh._n 15.5_o he_o first_o purge_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n by_o justification_n that_o we_o may_v serve_v the_o live_a god_n heb._n 9.14_o he_o make_v we_o first_o to_o live_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o then_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.25_o this_o be_v the_o order_n prescribe_v in_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n though_o the_o law_n prescribe_v a_o quite_o contrary_a method_n that_o we_o shall_v first_o perform_v its_o commandment_n that_o so_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v and_o live_v and_o thereby_o it_o prove_v a_o kill_a letter_n to_o we_o now_o mark_v well_o the_o great_a advantage_n you_o have_v for_o the_o attainment_n of_o holiness_n by_o seek_v it_o in_o a_o right_a gospel-order_n you_o will_v have_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n manifest_v towards_o you_o in_o forgive_a your_o sin_n receive_v you_o into_o favour_n and_o give_v you_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o glory_n free_o through_o christ_n to_o persuade_v and_o constrain_v you_o by_o sweet_a allurement_n to_o love_n god_n again_o that_o have_v so_o dear_o love_v you_o and_o to_o love_v other_o for_o his_o sake_n and_o to_o give_v up_o yourselves_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o all_o his_o commandment_n out_o of_o hearty_a love_n to_o he_o you_o will_v also_o enjoy_v the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o incline_v you_o powerful_o unto_o obedience_n and_o to_o strengthen_v you_o for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o against_o all_o your_o corruption_n and_o the_o temptation_n of_o satan_n so_o that_o you_o will_v have_v both_o wind_n and_o tide_n to_o forward_o your_o voyage_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n contrariwise_o if_o you_o rush_v upon_o the_o immediate_a performance_n of_o the_o law_n without_o take_v christ_n righteousness_n and_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o way_n to_o it_o you_o will_v find_v both_o wind_n tide_n against_o you_o your_o guilty_a conscience_n and_o corrupt_v dead_a nature_n shall_v certain_o defeat_v and_o frustrate_v all_o your_o erterprise_n and_o attempt_v to_o love_n god_n and_o serve_v he_o in_o love_n and_o you_o will_v but_o stir_v up_o sinful_a lust_n instead_o of_o stir_v up_o yourselves_o to_o true_a obedience_n or_o at_o best_o you_o will_v but_o attain_v to_o some_o slavish_a hypocritical_a performance_n oh_o that_o people_n will_v be_v persuade_v to_o consider_v the_o due_a place_n of_o holiness_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n and_o to_o seek_v it_o only_o there_o where_o they_o have_v all_o the_o advantage_n of_o gospel-grace_n to_o find_v it_o many_o miscarry_v in_o their_o zealous_a erterprise_n for_o godliness_n and_o after_o they_o have_v spend_v much_o labour_n in_o vain_a god_n make_v a_o breach_n upon_o they_o even_o to_o their_o everlasting_a destruction_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o uzzah_n to_o a_o temporal_a destruction_n because_o they_o seek_v he_o not_o after_o a_o due_a order_n 2_o chron._n second_o we_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o holiness_n as_o a_o very_a necessary_a part_n of_o that_o salvation_n that_o be_v receive_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n some_o be_v so_o drench_v with_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n that_o they_o accuse_v we_o for_o make_v good_a work_v needless_a to_o salvation_n if_o we_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v necessary_a either_o as_o condition_n to_o procure_v a_o interest_n in_o christ_n or_o as_o preparative_n to_o fit_v we_o for_o the_o receive_n of_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o other_o when_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n through_o faith_n without_o work_n do_v begin_v to_o disregard_n all_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n as_o not_o at_o all_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o do_v account_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o it_o only_o in_o point_n of_o gratitude_n if_o it_o be_v whole_o neglect_v they_o doubt_v not_o but_o freegrace_n will_v save_v they_o harmless_a yea_o some_o be_v give_v up_o to_o such_o strong_a antinomian_a delusion_n that_o they_o account_v it_o a_o part_n of_o the_o liberty_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o law_n purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o break_v the_o law_n in_o their_o conversation_n one_o cause_n of_o these_o error_n that_o be_v so_o contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o be_v that_o many_o be_v prone_a to_o imagine_v nothing_o else_o to_o be_v mean_v by_o salvation_n but_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o hell_n and_o in_o heavenly_a happiness_n and_o glory_n hence_o they_o conclude_v that_o if_o good_a work_n be_v a_o mean_n of_o glorification_n and_o precedent_a to_o it_o they_o must_v also_o be_v a_o precedent_n mean_v of_o our_o whole_a salvation_n and_o that_o if_o they_o be_v not_o a_o necessary_a mean_n of_o our_o whole_a salvation_n they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o necessary_a to_o glorification_n but_o though_o salvation_n be_v often_o take_v in_o scripture_n by_o way_n of_o eminency_n for_o its_o perfection_n in_o the_o state_n of_o heavenly_a glory_n yet_o according_a to_o its_o full_a and_o proper_a signification_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v by_o it_o all_o that_o freedom_n from_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o natural_a corrupt_a state_n and_o all_o those_o holy_a and_o happy_a enjoyment_n that_o we_o receive_v from_o christ_n our_o saviour_n either_o in_o this_o world_n by_o faith_n or_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v by_o glorification_n thus_o justification_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o dwell_v in_o we_o the_o privilege_n of_o adoption_n be_v part_n of_o our_o salvation_n which_o we_o partake_v of_o in_o this_o life_n thus_o also_o the_o conformity_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o our_o righteousness_n with_o which_o we_o be_v fill_v by_o jesus_n christ_n in_o this_o life_n be_v a_o necessary_a part_n of_o our_o salvation_n god_n save_v we_o from_o our_o finful_a uncleanness_n here_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o from_o hell_n hereafter_o ezek._n 36.29_o tit._n 3.5_o christ_n be_v call_v jesus_n i.e._n a_o saviour_n because_o he_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n mat._n 1.21_o therefore_o it_o be_v part_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o deliver_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n which_o be_v begin_v in_o this_o life_n by_o justification_n and_o sanctification_n and_o perfect_v by_o glorification_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v can_v we_o rational_o doubt_v whither_o it_o be_v any_o proper_a part_n of_o our_o salvation_n by_o christ_n to_o be_v quicken_v to_o live_v to_o god_n when_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n and_o to_o have_v the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n restore_v to_o we_o which_o we_o lose_v by_o the_o fall_n and_o to_o be_v free_v from_o a_o vile_a dishonourable_a slavery_n to_o satan_n and_o our_o own_o lust_n and_o make_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v honour_v so_o high_o as_o to_o walk_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o what_o be_v all_o this_o but_o holiness_n in_o heart_n and_o life_n conclude_v we_o then_o that_o holiness_n in_o this_o life_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o only_o as_o a_o mean_n to_o the_o end_n but_o by_o a_o noble_a kind_n of_o necessity_n as_o part_v of_o the_o end_n itself_o though_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o good_a work_n as_o procure_a cause_n yet_o we_o be_v save_v to_o good_a work_n as_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o saving-grace_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o eph._n 2.10_o it_o be_v indeed_o one_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n but_o the_o end_n of_o this_o be_v not_o that_o we_o may_v have_v liberty_n to_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o slavery_n but_o that_o we_o may_v fulfil_v the_o royal_a law_n of_o liberty_n and_o that_o we_o may_v serve_v in_o newness_n of_o spirit_n and_o not_o in_o the_o oldness_n of_o the_o letter_n gal._n 3.13_o 14._o rom._n 7.6_o yea_o holiness_n in_o this_o life_n be_v such_o a_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o be_v a_o necessary_a mean_n to_o make_v we_o meet_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heavenly_a light_n and_o glory_n without_o holiness_n we_o can_v never_o see_v god_n heb._n 12.14_o and_o
hope_n of_o the_o gospel_n col._n 1.23_o and_o to_o hold_v the_o begin_n of_o our_o confidence_n and_o the_o rejoice_v of_o hope_n steadfast_a to_o the_o end_n heb._n 6.14_o and_o build_v up_o ourselves_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a faith_n judas_n 20._o abound_v therein_o with_o thanksgiving_n col._n 2.7_o though_o we_o receive_v christ_n free_o by_o faith_n yet_o we_o be_v but_o babe_n in_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 3.1_o and_o we_o must_v not_o account_v that_o we_o have_v already_o attain_v or_o be_v make_v perfect_a phil._n 3.12_o 13._o but_o we_o must_v strive_v to_o be_v more_o root_v and_o build_v up_o in_o he_o until_o we_o come_v to_o the_o perfect_a man_n to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o stature_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n eph._n 4.13_o if_o the_o new_a nature_n be_v real_o in_o we_o by_o regeneration_n it_o will_v have_v a_o appetite_n to_o its_o own_o continuance_n and_o increase_n until_o it_o come_v to_o perfection_n as_o the_o new_a bear_a babe_n 1_o pet._n 2.2_o and_o we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o receive_v christ_n and_o a_o new_a holy_a nature_n by_o faith_n but_o also_o to_o live_v and_o walk_v by_o it_o and_o to_o resist_v the_o devil_n and_o to_o quench_v all_o his_o fiery_a dart_n by_o it_o and_o also_o to_o grow_v in_o grace_n and_o to_o perfect_a holiness_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n for_o we_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n 1_o pet._n 1.5_o as_o all_o our_o christian_a warfare_n be_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n 1_o tim._n 6.12_o all_o spiritual_a life_n and_o holiness_n continue_v grow_v or_o decay_v in_o we_o according_a as_o faith_n continue_v grow_v or_o decay_v in_o vigour_n but_o when_o this_o faith_n begin_v to_o sink_v by_o fear_n and_o doubt_n the_o man_n himself_o begin_v to_o sink_v together_o with_o it_o matt._n 14.29_o 31._o faith_n be_v like_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n while_o it_o be_v hold_v up_o israel_n prevail_v when_o it_o be_v let_v down_o amaleck_n prevail_v exod._n 17.11_o this_o continuance_n and_o growth_n in_o faith_n will_v require_v our_o labour_n and_o industry_n as_o well_o as_o the_o beginning_n though_o we_o ●●e_v to_o ascribe_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o finisher_n as_o well_o as_o the_o author_n of_o it_o heb._n 12.2_o the_o church_n meet_v with_o great_a difficulty_n in_o her_o march_v through_o the_o wilderness_n of_o this_o world_n to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n as_o well_o as_o in_o her_o first_o deliverance_n from_o egyptian_a bondage_n yea_o we_o often_o meet_v with_o great_a difficulty_n in_o go_v to_o perfection_n than_o we_o do_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o good_a work_n the_o wisdom_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n so_o order_v it_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v exercise_v with_o the_o sharp_a dispensation_n of_o providence_n and_o the_o fierce_a assault_n of_o our_o own_o corruption_n and_o satan_n temptation_n after_o we_o have_v grace_n give_v we_o to_o stand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n you_o must_v therefore_o endeavour_v to_o continue_v and_o go_v on_o in_o the_o same_o ●ight_a manner_n as_o i_o have_v teach_v you_o to_o begin_v this_o great_a work_n of_o believe_v in_o christ_n that_o your_o faith_n may_v be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n from_o the_o beginning_n to_o the_o end_n though_o it_o increase_v in_o degree_n for_o our_o faith_n be_v imperfect_a and_o join_v with_o much_o unbelief_n in_o this_o world_n and_o we_o have_v need_v to_o pray_v still_o lord_z i_o believe_v help_v my_o unbelief_n mar._n 9.24_o and_o therefore_o we_o have_v need_v to_o strive_v for_o more_o faith_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v christ_n in_o great_a perfection_n if_o you_o find_v your_o faith_n have_v produce_v good_a work_n you_o shall_v thereby_o increase_v your_o confidence_n in_o christ_n for_o salvation_n by_o his_o mere_a grace_n but_o take_v heed_n of_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o your_o faith_n from_o trust_v on_o the_o grace_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n to_o trust_v on_o your_o own_o work_n according_a to_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n that_o our_o first_o justification_n be_v by_o grace_n and_o faith_n only_o but_o our_o second_o justification_n be_v also_o by_o work_n beware_v also_o of_o trust_v on_o faith_n itself_o as_o a_o work_n of_o righteousness_n instead_o of_o trust_v on_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o you_o do_v not_o find_v that_o your_o believe_v in_o such_o a_o right_a manner_n as_o i_o have_v describe_v do_v produce_v such_o fruit_n of_o holiness_n as_o you_o desire_v you_o ought_v not_o to_o diminish_v but_o rather_o to_o increase_v your_o confidence_n in_o christ_n know_v that_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o faith_n hinder_v its_o fruitfulness_n and_o the_o great_a your_o confidence_n be_v concern_v the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o you_o in_o christ_n the_o great_a will_v be_v your_o love_n to_o god_n and_o to_o his_o service_n if_o you_o fall_v into_o any_o gross_a sin_n after_o the_o work_n be_v begin_v in_o you_o as_o david_n and_o peter_n do_v think_v not_o that_o you_o must_v cast_v away_o your_o confidence_n and_o expect_v nothing_o but_o wrath_n from_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o that_o you_o must_v refuse_v to_o be_v comfort_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n at_o least_o for_o some_o time_n for_o thus_o you_o will_v be_v the_o more_o weak_a and_o prone_a to_o fall_v into_o other_o sin_n but_o rather_o strivo_fw-la to_o believe_v more_o confident_o that_o you_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 1_o joh._n 2.1_o 2._o and_o let_v not_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n stay_v at_o all_o upon_o your_o conscience_n but_o wash_v it_o away_o with_o all_o speed_n in_o the_o fountain_n of_o christ_n blood_n which_o be_v open_v for_o we_o that_o it_o may_v be_v ready_a for_o our_o use_n on_o all_o such_o incident_a occasion_n that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v humble_v for_o your_o sin_n in_o a_o gospel_n way_n and_o may_v hate_v your_o own_o sinfulness_n and_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o with_o godly_a sorrow_n out_o of_o love_n to_o god_n peter_n may_v have_v be_v ruin_v for_o ever_o by_o deny_v of_o christ_n as_o judas_n be_v by_o betray_v he_o if_o peter_n faith_n have_v not_o be_v uphold_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n luke_n 22.32_o if_o a_o clould_n be_v cast_v over_o all_o your_o inward_a qualification_n so_o that_o you_o can_v see_v no_o grace_n at_o all_o in_o yourselves_o yet_o still_o trust_v on_o he_o that_o justify_v the_o ungodly_a and_o come_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o save_v they_o that_o be_v lose_v if_o god_n seem_v to_o deal_v with_o you_o as_o a_o enemy_n by_o bring_v on_o you_o some_o horrible_a affliction_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o job_n beware_v of_o demn_v your_o faith_n and_o its_o fruit_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n but_o rather_o say_v with_o holy_a job_n though_o he_o slay_v i_o yet_o will_v i_o trust_v in_o he_o but_o i_o will_v maintain_v my_o own_o way_n before_o he_o strive_v to_o keep_v and_o to_o increase_v faith_n by_o faith_n i._n e._n by_o act_v faith_n frequent_o by_o trust_v on_o god_n to_o keep_v and_o increase_v it_o be_v confident_a that_o he_o that_o have_v begin_v a_o good_a work_n in_o you_o will_v perform_v it_o until_o the_o day_n of_o jesus_n christ_n phil._n 1.6_o direct_v xii_o make_v diligent_a use_n of_o your_o most_o holy_a faith_n for_o the_o immediate_a performance_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n by_o walk_v no_o long_o according_a to_o your_o old_a natural_a state_n or_o any_o principle_n or_o mean_n of_o practice_n that_o belong_v unto_o it_o but_o only_o according_a to_o that_o new_a state_n which_o you_o receive_v by_o faith_n and_o the_o principle_n and_o mean_n of_o practice_n that_o proper_o belong_v thereunto_o and_o strive_v to_o continue_v and_o increase_v in_o such_o manner_n of_o practice_n this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o attain_v to_o a_o acceptable_a performance_n of_o those_o holy_a and_o righteous_a duty_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o this_o present_a life_n explication_n here_o i_o be_o guide_v you_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o practice_n wherein_o you_o be_v to_o make_v use_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o all_o other_o effectual_a mean_n of_o holiness_n before_o treat_v of_o which_o faith_n lay_v hold_v on_o for_o the_o immediate_a performance_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v the_o great_a end_n aim_v at_o in_o this_o whole_a treatise_n and_o therefore_o this_o deserve_v to_o be_v diligent_o consider_v as_o the_o principal_a direction_n to_o which_o all_o the_o forego_n and_o follow_v be_v subservient_fw-fr as_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o our_o old_a natural_a
therefore_o we_o have_v direct_v to_o seek_v of_o holiness_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o willing_a good_a free_o by_o a_o spiritual_a power_n as_o new_a creature_n partaker_n of_o a_o divine_a nature_n in_o christ_n yea_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v the_o first_o adam_n that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o second_o rom._n 5.12_o to_o believe_v the_o fall_n and_o original_a sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o fly_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o holiness_n by_o free_a gift_n know_v that_o we_o can_v attain_v it_o by_o our_o own_o power_n and_o free_a will_n 2_o cor._n 1.9_o mat._n 9.12_o 13._o rom._n 7.24_o 25._o 2_o cor._n 3.5_o eph._n 5.14_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o new_a man_n or_o a_o new_a creation_n if_o the_o old_a be_v not_o without_o strength_n and_o life_n joh_n 3.5_o 6_o eph._n 2.8_o but_o original_a deadness_n can_v hinder_v god_n work_v faith_n and_o hungring_n and_o thirsting_n after_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n through_o the_o gospel_n in_o those_o that_o god_n choose_v to_o walk_v holy_o and_o blameless_o before_o he_o in_o love_n 1_o thes_n 1.4_o 5._o act._n 26.18_o and_o so_o we_o be_v make_v alive_a in_o a_o new_a head_n and_o become_v branch_n of_o another_o vine_n live_v to_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n not_o by_o nature_n 2._o it_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n which_o many_o deny_v because_o they_o say_v it_o take_v man_n off_o from_o endeavour_n as_o fruitless_a by_o tell_v man_n that_o all_o event_n be_v predetermine_v this_o argument_n will_v be_v more_o forcible_a against_o endeavour_n by_o the_o power_n of_o our_o own_o free_a will_n but_o not_o at_o all_o against_o endeavour_n for_o holiness_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n give_v we_o faith_n and_o all_o holiness_n by_o his_o own_o spirit_n work_v in_o we_o through_o christ_n we_o be_v to_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o elect_n and_o god_n good_a will_n towards_o man_n matt._n 3.17_o luke_n 2.14_o psal_n 106.4_o 5._o election_n by_o grace_n destroy_v seek_v by_o work_n but_o not_o by_o grace_n rom._n 11.5_o 6._o and_o we_o be_v here_o teach_v to_o seek_v for_o salvation_n only_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o elect_n and_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o holiness_n be_v to_o be_v have_v by_o god_n will_n and_o not_o by_o our_o own_o and_o it_o may_v move_v we_o to_o desire_v holiness_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n rom._n 9.16_o psal_n 109.32_o and_o see_v it_o appear_v by_o this_o doctrine_n of_o sanctification_n through_o christ_n that_o we_o be_v god_n workmanship_n as_o to_o all_o the_o good_a wrought_v in_o we_o phil._n 2.12_o 13._o eph._n 2.10_o we_o may_v well_o admit_v that_o he_o have_v appoint_v his_o pleasure_n from_o eternity_n without_o infringe_v the_o natural_a liberty_n of_o our_o corrupt_a will_n which_o reach_v not_o unto_o good_a work_n act_n 15.18_o compare_v with_o 30._o man_n natural_a free_a will_n may_v well_o consist_v with_o god_n decree_v as_o in_o paradise_n decretum_fw-la radii_fw-la contingentia_fw-la 3._o it_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n rely_v on_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n without_o any_o work_n of_o our_o own_o and_o without_o consider_v faith_n as_o a_o work_n to_o procure_v favour_n by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o act_n but_o only_o as_o a_o hand_n to_o receive_v the_o gift_n or_o rather_o as_o the_o very_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o christ_n actual_o than_o any_o kind_n of_o condition_n intitle_v we_o to_o he_o as_o our_o food_n this_o great_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n many_o hate_n as_o break_v the_o strong_a bond_n of_o holiness_n and_o open_v a_o way_n to_o all_o licentiousness_n for_o they_o reckon_v that_o the_o conditionality_n of_o work_n to_o attain_v god_n favour_n and_o avoid_v his_o wrath_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o they_o to_o salvation_n be_v the_o most_o necessary_a and_o effectual_a impulsives_n to_o all_o holiness_n and_o they_o account_v that_o the_o other_o doctrine_n open_v the_o floodgate_n to_o licentiousness_n and_o true_o this_o consideration_n will_v be_v of_o some_o weight_n if_o people_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o holiness_n by_o moral_a suasion_n and_o their_o natural_a endeavour_n stir_v up_o by_o the_o term_n of_o the_o law_n and_o by_o slavish_a fear_n and_o mercenary_a hope_n for_o the_o force_n of_o these_o motive_n will_v be_v altogether_o enervate_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o free_a grace_n but_o i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o a_o man_n be_v a_o guilty_a dead_a creature_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o serve_v god_n out_o of_o love_n by_o force_n of_o any_o of_o these_o motive_n and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o sanctify_v by_o any_o of_o our_o own_o endeavour_n to_o work_v holiness_n in_o ourselves_o but_o rather_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n even_o the_o same_o whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o that_o the_o urge_n of_o the_o law_n stir_v up_o sin_n and_o that_o freedom_n from_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o all_o holiness_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v rom._n 6.11_o 14._o and_o 7.4_o 5._o and_o this_o way_n of_o sanctification_n confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n inform_v rom._n 8.1_o for_o if_o we_o be_v sanctify_v and_o so_o restore_v to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o life_n by_o the_o spirit_n through_o faith_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n have_v take_v we_o into_o his_o favour_n and_o pardon_v our_o sin_n by_o the_o same_o faith_n without_o the_o law_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o favour_n thereby_o to_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n rom._n 8.2_o yea_o his_o justice_n will_v not_o admit_v his_o give_a life_n without_o work_n if_o we_o be_v not_o make_v righteous_a in_o christ_n by_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o we_o can_v trust_v to_o have_v holiness_n free_o give_v we_o by_o christ_n upon_o any_o rational_a ground_n except_o we_o can_v also_o trust_v on_o the_o same_o christ_n for_o free_a reconciliation_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o justification_n neither_o can_n guilty_a curse_a creature_n that_o can_v work_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o deadness_n under_o the_o curse_n be_v bring_v to_o a_o rational_a love_n of_o god_n except_o they_o apprehend_v his_o love_v they_o first_o free_o without_o work_n 1_o john_n 4.19_o the_o great_a objection_n and_o reason_n of_o so_o many_o controversy_n and_o book_n write_v about_o it_o be_v because_o they_o think_v that_o man_n will_v trust_v to_o be_v save_v however_o they_o live_v but_o sanctification_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o justification_n and_o flow_v from_o the_o same_o grace_n and_o we_o trust_v for_o they_o both_o by_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o for_o the_o former_a in_o order_n to_o the_o latter_a and_o such_o a_o faith_n be_v it_o never_o so_o confident_a tend_v not_o to_o licentiousness_n but_o holiness_n and_o we_o grant_v that_o justification_n by_o grace_n destroy_v holiness_n by_o legal_a endeavour_n but_o not_o by_o grace_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o live_v a_o papist_n and_o die_v a_o antinomian_n 4._o it_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o real_a union_n with_o christ_n so_o plentiful_o hold_v forth_o in_o scripture_n which_o doctrine_n some_o count_n a_o vain_a notion_n and_o can_v endure_v it_o because_o they_o think_v it_o work_v not_o holiness_n but_o presumption_n whereas_o i_o have_v show_v that_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o spiritual_a life_n and_o holiness_n which_o be_v treasure_v up_o in_o christ_n and_o that_o so_o inseparable_o that_o we_o can_v have_v it_o without_o a_o real_a union_n with_o he_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o 1_o john_n 5.12_o john_n 6.53_o ch_n 15.5_o 1_o cor._n 1.30_o col._n 3.11_o the_o member_n and_o branch_n can_v live_v without_o union_n with_o the_o vine_n and_o head_n nor_o the_o stone_n be_v part_n of_o the_o live_a temple_n except_o they_o be_v real_o join_v mediate_o or_o immediate_o to_o the_o cornerstone_n 5._o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o certain_a final_a perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n john_n 3.36_o c._n 6.37_o &_o 5.24_o 1_o john_n 3.9_o 1_o thess_n 5.24_o phil._n 1.6_o john_n 10.23_o 29._o c._n 4.14_o they_o think_v this_o doctrine_n make_v people_n careless_a of_o good_a work_n i_o answer_v it_o make_v people_n careless_a of_o seek_v they_o by_o their_o own_o natural_a strength_n and_o in_o a_o way_n of_o slavish_a fear_n but_o careful_a and_o courageous_a in_o trust_v on_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o they_o when_o they_o be_v bring_v by_o regeneration_n hearty_o to_o desire_v they_o rom._n 6.14_o numb_a 13.30_o set_v upon_o the_o do_n of_o they_o in_o that_o grace_n 1_o thess_n 5.8_o
the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n shall_v at_o last_o stand_v or_o fall_v according_a to_o those_o term_n three_o sincere_a obedience_n can_v be_v perform_v to_o all_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n except_o it_o be_v also_o perform_v to_o the_o moral_a law_n as_o give_v by_o moses_n and_o as_o oblige_v we_o by_o that_o authority_n some_o assertor_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o salvation_n by_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n will_v fain_o be_v free_a from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n because_o that_o justifi_v none_o but_o thunder_v out_o a_o curse_n against_o all_o those_o that_o seek_v salvation_n by_o the_o work_v of_o it_o gal._n 3.10_o 11._o but_o if_o they_o be_v at_o all_o justify_v by_o sincere_a work_n their_o respect_n to_o moses_n authority_n will_v not_o hinder_v their_o success_n for_o many_o that_o be_v good_a christian_n account_v themselves_o bind_v to_o obey_v not_o only_o the_o moral_n but_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o if_o they_o have_v seek_v justification_n by_o any_o work_n they_o will_v have_v seek_v it_o by_o those_o act_n 20_o 20_o 21._o they_o know_v not_o of_o any_o justification_n by_o sincere_a work_n as_o command_v only_o in_o the_o gospel_n yet_o if_o they_o have_v err_v in_o any_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v tolerate_v their_o weakness_n and_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o they_o must_v seek_v their_o salvation_n by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o moral_a law_n as_o give_v by_o moses_n or_o else_o they_o can_v never_o get_v it_o by_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n christ_n never_o love_v their_o new_a condition_n so_o well_o as_o to_o abolish_v the_o moysaicall_a authority_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n for_o the_o establishment_n of_o it_o he_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o to_o fulfil_v they_o in_o the_o practice_n require_v by_o they_o and_o have_v declare_v that_o those_o that_o break_v one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o commandment_n and_o teach_v man_n so_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v and_o teach_v they_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v call_v great_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n mat._n 5.17_o 19_o he_o command_v we_o to_o do_v to_o man_n whatsoever_o we_o will_v they_o shall_v do_v to_o we_o because_o this_o be_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o account_v the_o law_n authoritative_a to_o oblige_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n he_o require_v his_o disciple_n to_o observe_v and_o do_v whatsoever_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n bid_v they_o because_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n mat._n 23.23_o and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n when_o christ_n have_v occasion_n to_o answer_v the_o question_n of_o those_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o error_n that_o i_o be_o now_o deal_v with_o in_o seek_v their_o salvation_n by_o their_o own_o work_n he_o show_v they_o that_o they_o must_v obey_v the_o command_n as_o they_o be_v already_o establish_v by_o the_o moysaicall_a authority_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n how_o read_v thou_o this_o do_v and_o thou_o shall_v live_v luke_n 10.26_o if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n which_o be_v thou_o shall_v do_v no_o murder_n thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n etc._n etc._n in_o like_a manner_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n urge_v the_o performance_n of_o moral_a duty_n upon_o believer_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o law_n give_v by_o moses_n the_o apostle_n paul_n exhort_v to_o love_v one_o another_o because_o he_o that_o love_v another_o have_v fulfil_v the_o law_n rom._n 13.8_o and_o to_o honour_v our_o father_n and_o mother_n which_o be_v the_o first_o commandment_n with_o promise_n ephes_n 6.2_o the_o apostle_n john_n exhort_v to_o love_v other_o as_o no_o new_a but_o a_o old_a commandment_n the_o apostle_n james_n exhort_v to_o fulfil_v the_o royal_a law_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o and_o to_o keep_v all_o the_o command_v of_o the_o law_n one_o as_o well_o as_o another_o because_o he_o that_o say_v do_v not_o commit_v adultery_n say_v also_o do_v not_o kill_v jam._n 2.8_o 10_o 11._o sound_z protestant_n have_v account_v the_o denial_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n of_o moses_n to_o be_v a_o antinomian_a error_n though_o our_o late_a prevaricator_n against_o antinomianism_n maintain_v this_o error_n yet_o they_o establish_v a_o worse_a error_n of_o justification_n by_o their_o sincere_a gospel-work_n i_o think_v the_o denomination_n of_o the_o antinomian_o arise_v from_o this_o error_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n have_v its_o authority_n at_o first_o from_o christ_n for_o christ_n be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n that_o ordain_v the_o law_n by_o angel_n on_o mount_n sinai_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n a_o mediator_n for_o the_o israelite_n who_o be_v then_o his_o only_a church_n and_o with_o who_o we_o believe_v gentile_n be_v now_o join_v as_o fellow-member_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n eph._n 3.6_o and_o though_o christ_n have_v since_o abrogate_a some_o of_o the_o commandment_n then_o give_v by_o moses_n concern_v figurative_a ceremony_n and_o judicial_a proceed_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o annul_v the_o obligative_a authority_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n but_o have_v leave_v it_o in_o its_o full_a force_n to_o oblige_v we_o in_o moral_a duty_n that_o be_v still_o to_o be_v practise_v as_o when_o some_o act_n of_o any_o parliament_n be_v repeal_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o parliament_n remain_v inviolable_a in_o other_o act_n that_o be_v not_o repeal_v i_o know_v they_o object_n that_o the_o ten_o commandment_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n the_o ministration_n of_o death_n write_v and_o engrave_v on_o stone_n be_v also_o do_v away_o by_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 3.7_o but_o this_o make_v altogether_o against_o their_o conditional_a covenant_n for_o they_o be_v the_o ministration_n of_o death_n and_o do_v not_o as_o they_o command_v perfect_a obedience_n for_o even_o christ_n himself_o command_v we_o to_o be_v perfect_a mat._n 5.48_o but_o as_o they_o be_v condition_n for_o procure_a life_n and_o avoid_v death_n establish_v by_o promise_n of_o life_n to_o the_o doer_n and_o a_o curse_n to_o the_o breaker_n of_o they_o gal._n 3.10_o 12._o the_o covenant_n make_v with_o israel_n on_o mount_n sinai_n be_v abolish_v by_o christ_n the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n heb._n 8.8_o 9_o 13._o and_o the_o ten_o commandment_n bound_v we_o not_o as_o they_o be_v word_n of_o that_o covenant_n exod._n 34.28_o i_o mean_v they_o bound_v we_o not_o as_o condition_n of_o that_o covenant_n except_o we_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n for_o the_o law_n as_o a_o covenant_n do_v still_o stand_v in_o force_n enough_o to_o curse_v those_o that_o seek_v salvation_n by_o their_o own_o work_n gal._n 3.10_o and_o if_o abolish_v it_o be_v only_o to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n gal._n 2.19_o 20._o &_o 15.15_o but_o the_o ten_o commandment_n bound_v we_o still_o as_o they_o be_v then_o give_v to_o a_o people_n that_o be_v at_o that_o time_n under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n make_v with_o abraham_n to_o show_v they_o what_o duty_n be_v holy_a just_a and_o good_a well_o please_v to_o god_n and_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n for_o their_o conversation_n the_o result_n of_o all_o be_v that_o we_o must_v still_o practice_v moral_a duty_n as_o command_v by_o moses_n but_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o our_o practice_n if_o we_o use_v they_o as_o a_o rule_n of_o life_n not_o as_o condition_n of_o justification_n they_o can_v be_v no_o ministration_n of_o death_n or_o kill_a letter_n unto_o we_o their_o perfection_n indeed_o make_v they_o to_o be_v hard_a term_n to_o procure_v life_n by_o but_o a_o better_a rule_n to_o discover_v all_o imperfection_n and_o to_o guide_v we_o to_o that_o perfection_n which_o we_o shall_v aim_v at_o and_o it_o will_v be_v our_o wisdom_n not_o to_o part_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o decalogue_n of_o moses_n until_o our_o new_a divine_n can_v furnish_v we_o with_o another_o system_fw-la of_o morality_n as_o complete_a as_o that_o and_o as_o excellent_o compose_v and_o order_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o more_o authentic_a than_o that_o be_v 4_o those_o that_o endeavour_v to_o procure_v christ_n salvation_n by_o their_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o all_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n do_v act_n contrary_a to_o that_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n freegrace_n and_o faith_n discover_v in_o the_o
we_o must_v perceive_v it_o to_o make_v we_o love_v he_o for_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o god_n contrary_n to_o we_o that_o hate_v we_o and_o will_v damn_v we_o our_o own_o innate_a self-love_n will_v breed_v hatred_n and_o heart-rising_n against_o he_o in_o spite_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o love_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n must_v flow_v from_o faith_n unfeigned_a 1_o tim._n 1.5_o and_o if_o hatred_n work_v in_o thou_o more_o than_o love_n how_o can_v thou_o expect_v good_a thought_n of_o god_n or_o any_o other_o than_o blaspheme_v or_o at_o least_o murmur_a thought_n of_o he_o in_o this_o condition_n ill-will_n never_o speak_v or_o think_v well_o the_o first_o right_a holy_a thought_n thou_o can_v have_v of_o god_n be_v thought_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o mercy_n to_o thy_o soul_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v include_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n get_v these_o thought_n first_o by_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o they_o will_v breed_v in_o thou_o love_n to_o god_n and_o all_o good_a thought_n of_o he_o and_o free_v thou_o from_o blasphemous_a and_o murmur_a thought_n by_o degree_n for_o love_n think_v no_o evil_a 1_o cor._n 13.9_o then_o will_v thou_o be_v able_a to_o account_n god_n just_a and_o merciful_a if_o he_o have_v damn_v thou_o and_o extend_v his_o grace_n to_o other_o and_o thou_o will_v be_v able_a to_o think_v well_o of_o his_o holiness_n and_o of_o his_o decree_n which_o many_o can_v endure_v to_o hear_v of_o the_o way_n to_o get_v rid_v of_o thy_o rage_a lust_n be_v by_o faith_n that_o purify_v the_o heart_n and_o work_v by_o love_n act._n 15.9_o gal._n 5.6_o the_o soul_n must_v be_v bring_v to_o take_v pleasure_n in_o god_n and_o christ_n by_o faith_n or_o else_o it_o will_v lust_n after_o fleshly_a and_o worldly_a pleasure_n and_o the_o more_o you_o strive_v against_o lust_n without_o faith_n the_o more_o they_o be_v stir_v up_o though_o you_o prevail_v so_o far_o as_o to_o restrain_v the_o fulfil_n of_o they_o beg_v a_o holy_a fear_n of_o god_n with_o fear_n of_o come_v short_a of_o the_o promise_a rest_n through_o unbelief_n heb._n 4.1_o such_o a_o fear_n be_v a_o ingredient_n of_o faith_n and_o it_o will_v breed_v in_o we_o a_o reverential_a yea_o a_o childlike_a fear_n of_o god_n and_o his_o goodness_n heb._n 12.28_o hos_fw-la 3.5_o we_o must_v have_v grace_n whereby_o we_o may_v serve_v god_n with_o reverence_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v in_o the_o margin_n we_o must_v have_v or_o hold_v fast_a grace_n and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o hold_v fast_o grace_n but_o by_o faith_n and_o this_o will_v quick_o calm_v all_o panic_n and_o torment_a horror_n and_o if_o you_o will_v be_v free_a from_o carelessness_n and_o slightning_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n your_o way_n be_v first_o to_o avoid_v despair_v by_o believe_v for_o people_n grow_v careless_a by_o despair_v and_o for_o their_o own_o quiet_a they_o will_v endeavour_v to_o slight_a evil_n which_o they_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o prevent_v according_a to_o the_o proverb_n let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v 1_o cor._n 15.32_o true_a humiliation_n for_o sin_n be_v either_o a_o part_n or_o fruit_n of_o faith_n for_o on_o our_o believe_v we_o shall_v remember_v our_o own_o evil_a way_n and_o do_n that_o be_v not_o good_a and_o shall_v loathe_v ourselves_o in_o our_o own_o sight_n for_o all_o our_o abomination_n ezek._n 36.31_o we_o shall_v also_o then_o willing_o renounce_v our_o own_o righteousness_n and_o account_v it_o but_o dung_n that_o we_o may_v win_v christ_n by_o faith_n phil._n 3.7_o 8._o but_o beggar_n will_v make_v the_o most_o of_o all_o their_o nasty_a rag_n till_o they_o be_v furnish_v with_o better_a clothes_n and_o cripple_n will_v not_o cast_v away_o their_o crutch_n until_o they_o have_v a_o better_a support_n to_o lean_v on_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o sin_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o believe_v the_o pardon_v grace_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o a_o pardon_n from_o a_o prince_n will_v sometime_o soon_o draw_v tear_n from_o a_o stubborn_a malefactor_n than_o the_o fear_n of_o a_o halter_n will_n thus_o the_o sinful_a woman_n be_v bring_v to_o wash_v christ_n foot_n with_o her_o tear_n luke_n 7.37_o 38._o we_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v sorry_a for_o grieve_v god_n with_o our_o sin_n while_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o enemy_n that_o will_v ease_v himself_o well_o enough_o of_o his_o burden_n and_o right_v himself_o upon_o we_o by_o our_o everlasting_a destruction_n the_o belief_n of_o god_n pardon_v and_o accept_v grace_n be_v a_o necessary_a mean_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o a_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o sin_n the_o people_n free_o confess_v their_o sin_n when_o they_o be_v baptize_v of_o john_n in_o jordan_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n mark_v 1.4_o 5._o the_o confession_n of_o despairer_n be_v force_v like_o the_o extort_a confession_n and_o cry_n out_o of_o malefactor_n upon_o the_o rack_n a_o pardon_n soon_o open_v the_o mouth_n to_o a_o ingenuous_a confession_n than_o confess_v and_o be_v hang_v or_o confess_v and_o be_v damn_v therefore_o if_o you_o will_v free_o confess_v your_o sin_n believe_v first_o that_o god_n be_v faithful_a and_o just_a to_o forgive_v your_o sin_n through_o christ_n 1_o joh._n 1.9_o and_o if_o you_o will_v pray_v to_o god_n or_o praise_v he_o with_o lively_a affection_n you_o must_v first_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v hear_v you_o and_o give_v you_o what_o be_v best_a for_o you_o for_o christ_n sake_n joh._n 16.23_o 24._o otherwise_o your_o pray_n will_v be_v only_o from_o the_o tooth_n outward_a for_o how_o shall_v you_o call_v on_o he_o on_o who_o you_o have_v not_o believe_v rom._n 10.14_o you_o must_v come_v first_o to_o christ_n the_o altar_n by_o faith_n that_o by_o he_o you_o may_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n continual_o heb._n 13.10_o 15._o final_o to_o pass_v from_o particular_n to_o the_o general_a assertion_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o direction_n if_o you_o ask_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v that_o we_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n or_o get_v any_o save_a qualification_n i_o must_v direct_v you_o first_o to_o faith_n as_o the_o work_n of_o work_n and_o the_o great_a save_v preparatory_a to_o all_o good_a qualification_n by_o answer_v in_o our_o saviour_n word_n this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v joh._n 6.28_o 29._o direct_v viii_o be_v sure_a to_o seek_v for_o holiness_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n only_o in_o its_o due_a order_n where_o god_n have_v place_v it_o after_o union_n with_o christ_n justification_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o that_o order_n seek_v it_o earnest_o by_o faith_n as_o a_o very_a necessary_a part_n of_o your_o salvation_n explication_n i_o hope_v the_o reader_n will_v observe_v wary_o in_o all_o these_o direction_n that_o the_o holiness_n aim_v at_o as_o the_o great_a end_n in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n consist_v not_o in_o the_o grace_n or_o act_n of_o faith_n require_v peculiar_o by_o the_o gospel_n which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o save_a gift_n of_o christ_n yet_o be_v here_o consider_v rather_o as_o a_o mean_n precedent_n to_o the_o reception_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o his_o salvation_n than_o a_o part_n of_o his_o salvation_n receive_v but_o the_o holiness_n aim_v at_o consist_v in_o conformity_n to_o the_o whole_a moral_a law_n to_o which_o we_o be_v natural_o oblige_v if_o their_o have_v never_o be_v any_o gospel_n or_o any_o such_o duty_n as_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o salvation_n now_o in_o this_o direction_n three_o thing_n be_v contain_v that_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o guide_v we_o to_o the_o attainment_n of_o this_o great_a end_n and_o therefore_o worthy_a of_o our_o serious_a consideration_n first_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o high_a concern_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o due_a place_n and_o order_n wherein_o god_n have_v settle_v this_o holy_a practice_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o a_o great_a point_n of_o christian_a wisdom_n to_o seek_v it_o only_o in_o that_o order_n we_o know_v that_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o order_n and_o that_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n have_v appear_v in_o appoint_v the_o order_n of_o his_o creature_n which_o we_o be_v force_v to_o observe_v for_o attainment_n of_o our_o end_n in_o worldly_a thing_n so_o also_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n god_n have_v make_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n order_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o sure_a 2_o sam._n 23.5_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o have_v a_o orderly_a dependence_n each_o upon_o other_o as_o link_n of_o the_o same_o golden_a chain_n though_o several_a of_o they_o and_o a_o title_n to_o they_o
be_v as_o unfit_a for_o the_o glorious_a presence_n as_o swine_n for_o the_o presence-chamber_n of_o a_o earthly_a prince_n i_o confess_v some_o may_v be_v convert_v when_o they_o be_v so_o near_o the_o point_n of_o death_n that_o they_o may_v have_v little_a time_n to_o practice_n holiness_n in_o this_o world_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v active_a like_o fire_n mat._n 3.11_o and_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v give_v it_o will_v immediate_o produce_v good_a inward_a working_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o people_n which_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o manifest_v the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n in_o save_v they_o at_o the_o great_a day_n when_o he_o shall_v judge_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n though_o some_o possible_o may_v not_o have_v so_o much_o time_n to_o discover_v their_o inward_a grace_n in_o any_o outward_a good_a work_n as_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n luke_n 23.40.43_o the_o three_o and_o last_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v in_o this_o direction_n be_v that_o holiness_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o earnest_o by_o faith_n as_o a_o very_a necessary_a part_n of_o our_o salvation_n great_a multitude_n of_o ignorant_a people_n that_o live_v under_o the_o gospel_n harden_v their_o heart_n in_o sin_n and_o ruin_v their_o soul_n for_o ever_o by_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o such_o a_o imaginary_a salvation_n as_o consist_v not_o at_o all_o in_o holiness_n but_o only_o in_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o deliverance_n from_o everlasting_a torment_n they_o will_v be_v free_a from_o the_o punishment_n due_a to_o sin_n but_o they_o love_v their_o lust_n so_o well_o that_o they_o hate_v holiness_n and_o will_v not_o be_v save_v from_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n the_o way_n to_o oppose_v this_o pernicious_a delusion_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v as_o some_o do_v that_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n be_v a_o save_a act_n of_o faith_n but_o rather_o to_o show_v that_o none_o do_v or_o can_v trust_v on_o christ_n for_o true_a salvation_n except_o they_o trust_v on_o he_o for_o holiness_n neither_o do_v they_o hearty_o desire_v true_a salvation_n if_o they_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v make_v holy_a and_o righteous_a in_o their_o heart_n and_o life_n if_o ever_o god_n and_o christ_n give_v you_o salvation_n holiness_n will_v be_v one_o part_n of_o it_o if_o christ_n wash_v you_o not_o from_o the_o filth_n of_o your_o sin_n you_o have_v no_o part_n in_o he_o joh._n 13.8_o what_o a_o strange_a kind_n of_o salvation_n do_v they_o desire_v that_o care_v not_o for_o holiness_n they_o will_v be_v save_v and_o yet_o be_v altogether_o dead_a in_o sin_n alien_n from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n bereave_v of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n deform_v by_o the_o image_n of_o satan_n his_o slave_n and_o vassal_n to_o their_o own_o filthy_a lust_n utter_o unmeet_a for_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n in_o glory_n such_o a_o salvation_n as_o that_o be_v never_o purchase_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o those_o that_o seek_v it_o abuse_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o turn_v it_o into_o lasciviousness_n they_o will_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n and_o yet_o out_o of_o christ_n in_o a_o fleshly_a state_n whereas_o god_n do_v free_a none_o from_o condemnation_n but_o those_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n that_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n or_o else_o they_o will_v divide_v christ_n and_o take_v a_o part_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o leave_v out_o the_o rest_n but_o christ_n be_v not_o divide_v 1_o cor._n 1.13_o they_o will_v have_v their_o sin_n forgive_v not_o that_o they_o may_v walk_v with_o god_n in_o love_n in_o time_n to_o come_v but_o that_o they_o may_v practise_v their_o enmity_n against_o he_o without_o any_o fear_n of_o punishment_n but_o let_v they_o not_o be_v deceive_v god_n be_v not_o mock_v they_o understand_v not_o what_o true_a salvation_n be_v neither_o be_v they_o ever_o yet_o thorough_o sensible_a of_o their_o lose_a estate_n and_o of_o the_o great_a evil_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o which_o they_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o be_v but_o a_o imagination_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n and_o therefore_o their_o trust_v be_v gross_a presumption_n true_a gospel_n faith_n make_v we_o to_o come_v to_o christ_n with_o a_o thirsty_a appetite_n that_o we_o may_v drink_v of_o live_a water_n even_o of_o his_o sanctify_a spirit_n john_n 7.37_o 38._o and_o to_o cry_v out_o earnest_o to_o save_v we_o not_o only_o from_o hell_n but_o from_o sin_n say_v teach_v we_o to_o do_v thy_o will_n thy_o spirit_n be_v good_a psal_n 143.10_o turn_v thou_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v turn_v jer._n 31.18_o create_v in_o i_o a_o clean_a heart_n o_o god_n and_o renew_v a_o right_a spirit_n within_o i_o psal_n 51.10_o this_o be_v the_o way_n whereby_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o grace_n do_v necessitate_v we_o to_o holiness_n of_o life_n by_o constrain_a we_o to_o seek_v for_o it_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o a_o substantial_a part_n of_o that_o salvation_n which_o be_v free_o give_v to_o we_o through_o christ_n direct_v ix_o we_o must_v first_o receive_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o perform_v sincere_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n explication_n since_o man_n fall_v from_o obedience_n to_o god_n which_o he_o be_v enable_v and_o engage_v to_o perform_v by_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o first_o happy_a state_n in_o paradise_n god_n may_v have_v just_o refuse_v ever_o to_o give_v man_n again_o any_o comfort_n beforehand_o to_o encourage_v he_o to_o his_o duty_n that_o the_o way_n to_o holiness_n be_v hedge_v up_o against_o he_o with_o the_o thorn_n and_o briar_n of_o fear_n grief_n and_o despair_n he_o may_v never_o be_v able_a to_o escape_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n which_o be_v denounce_v against_o his_o first_o transgression_n this_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o method_n of_o the_o legal_a covenant_n wherein_o god_n promise_v we_o no_o life_n comfort_n or_o happiness_n until_o we_o have_v thorough_o perform_v his_o law_n and_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o mount_n sinai_n promulgation_n explicate_v levit._n 26._o throughout_o and_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n so_o strong_o addict_v to_o this_o legal_a method_n of_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o dissuade_v those_o that_o live_v under_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o place_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n before_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o they_o can_v make_v salvation_n itself_o yet_o they_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o make_v all_o the_o comfort_n of_o it_o to_o depend_v upon_o their_o own_o work_n they_o think_v it_o as_o unreasonable_a to_o expect_v comfort_n before_o duty_n as_o wage_n before_o work_n or_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n before_o the_o husband_n man_n labour_n 2_o tim._n 2.6_o they_o account_v the_o only_a effectual_a way_n to_o secure_v the_o obedience_n we_o owe_v to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v to_o ground_v all_o our_o comfort_n on_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o and_o that_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a by_o prophesy_a peace_n to_o they_o where_o there_o be_v no_o peace_n ezek._n 13.16_o 22._o and_o open_v the_o floodgate_n to_o all_o licentiousness_n therefore_o some_o preacher_n will_v advise_v man_n not_o to_o be_v solicitous_a and_o hasty_a of_o get_v of_o comfort_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v rather_o exercise_v themselves_o diligent_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o they_o tell_v they_o that_o in_o so_o do_v their_o condition_n will_v be_v safe_a and_o happy_a at_o last_o though_o they_o never_o enjoy_v any_o comfort_n of_o their_o salvation_n as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v in_o this_o world_n that_o you_o may_v right_o understand_v what_o i_o have_v assert_v in_o the_o direction_n against_o such_o vulgar_a error_n take_v notice_n that_o i_o do_v not_o make_v the_o only_a place_n of_o gospel-comfort_n to_o be_v before_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n comfort_v his_o people_n on_o every_o side_n psal_n 71.21_o both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o that_o the_o great_a consolation_n do_v follow_v after_o duty_n yet_o some_o comfort_n god_n give_v to_o his_o people_n before_o hand_n as_o advance-money_n to_o furnish_v they_o for_o his_o service_n though_o most_o of_o the_o pay_n come_v in_o afterward_o neither_o do_v i_o hereby_o speak_v any_o peace_n to_o those_o that_o continue_v in_o their_o sinful_a natural_a state_n for_o the_o comfort_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o can_v be_v receive_v without_o reject_v those_o false_a confidence_n whereby_o natural_a man_n harden_v themselves_o in_o sin_n and_o without_o that_o effectual_a work_n of_o
of_o these_o consolation_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n beside_o the_o gospel_n propose_v peace_n and_o comfort_n free_o to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o yet_o bring_v to_o holiness_n yet_o if_o they_o have_v heart_n to_o receive_v it_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v from_o sin_n to_o righteness_n when_o the_o apostle_n enter_v into_o a_o house_n they_o be_v first_o to_o say_v peace_n be_v to_o the_o house_n luke_n 10.5_o at_o their_o very_a first_o preach_v to_o sinner_n they_o acquaint_v they_o with_o the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n for_o every_o one_o that_o will_v receive_v it_o as_o a_o free-gift_n by_o faith_n act_v 3.26_o &_o 13.26_o 32_o 38._o &_o 16.30_o 31._o they_o assure_v they_o if_o they_o will_v but_o trust_v hearty_o on_o christ_n for_o all_o his_o salvation_n they_o shall_v have_v it_o although_o they_o be_v at_o present_a the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n which_o be_v comfort_n sufficient_a for_o all_o that_o due_o esteem_v spiritual_a comfort_n hunger_a and_o thirst_v after_o it_o and_o this_o be_v a_o method_n agreeable_a to_o the_o design_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v to_o advance_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enjoyment_n god_n will_v give_v we_o his_o consolation_n before_o our_o good_a work_n as_o well_o as_o after_o they_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o give_v we_o everlasting_a consolation_n and_o good_a hope_n through_o grace_n and_o not_o through_o the_o procurement_n of_o our_o work_n 2_o thess_n 2.16_o four_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n require_v a_o comfortable_a state_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o i_o have_v before_o prove_v sufficient_o that_o they_o require_v a_o persuasion_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o of_o our_o future_a happiness_n and_o strength_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o walk_v in_o holy_a obedience_n joshuah_n must_v be_v strong_a and_o very_a courageous_a that_o he_o may_v observe_v to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o law_n that_o moses_n the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n command_v he_o josh_n 1.7_o i_o shall_v instance_n brief_o in_o the_o comfort_n without_o which_o several_a great_a duty_n can_v be_v sincere_o perform_v can_v we_o love_v god_n and_o delight_n in_o he_o above_o all_o while_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o our_o everlasting_a enemy_n and_o apprehend_v no_o love_n and_o mercy_n in_o he_o towards_o we_o that_o may_v render_v he_o a_o suitable_a good_a for_o we_o and_o lovely_a in_o our_o eye_n what_o doleful_a melody_n will_v the_o heart_n make_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o praise_n if_o we_o account_v that_o all_o those_o perfection_n for_o which_o we_o praise_v he_o will_v rather_o aggravate_v our_o misery_n than_o make_v we_o happy_a what_o a_o heartless_a work_n will_v it_o be_v to_o pray_v to_o he_o and_o to_o offer_v up_o ourselves_o to_o his_o service_n if_o we_o have_v no_o comfortable_a hope_n that_o he_o will_v accept_v we_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o we_o to_o free_v ourselves_o from_o cark_n care_n by_o cast_v our_o care_n upon_o the_o lord_n if_o we_o do_v not_o apprehend_v that_o he_o care_v for_o we_o can_v we_o be_v patient_a in_o affliction_n with_o cheerfulness_n and_o under_o persecution_n except_o we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n rom._n 5.1_o 2_o 3._o what_o reason_n can_v persuade_v we_o to_o submit_v willing_o according_a to_o our_o duty_n to_o the_o stroke_n of_o present_a death_n if_o god_n be_v please_v to_o lay_v it_o upon_o we_o when_o we_o have_v no_o comfort_n to_o relieve_v we_o against_o the_o horrible_a fear_n of_o intolerable_a torment_n in_o hell_n for_o ever_o if_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n for_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o our_o ancestor_n in_o this_o nation_n have_v do_v we_o shall_v find_v it_o necessary_a to_o abandon_v the_o late_a upstart_n notion_n that_o have_v be_v breed_v in_o a_o time_n of_o ease_n and_o to_o embrace_v the_o comfortable_a doctrine_n of_o former_a protestant_n which_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n make_v so_o many_o courageous_a and_o joyful_a martyr_n five_o the_o state_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v from_o sin_n to_o godliness_n require_v necessary_o that_o after_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o vnnity_n of_o their_o former_a false_a confidence_n and_o of_o their_o deadness_n in_o original-sin_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v have_v a_o supply_n of_o new_a gospel_n comfort_n afford_v to_o encourage_v their_o faint_a soul_n to_o holy_a practice_n how_o little_o do_v many_o physician_n of_o soul_n consider_v the_o condition_n of_o their_o unconverted_a patient_n that_o be_v altogether_o without_o spiritual_a life_n and_o strength_n and_o be_v or_o must_v be_v convince_v he_o that_o prescribe_v bodily_a exercise_n to_o a_o man_n lie_v bedridden_a under_o a_o dead_a palsy_n before_o any_o effectual_a mean_n be_v use_v to_o strengthen_v he_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o merciless_a insult_a tormentor_n rather_o than_o of_o a_o wise_a and_o tender-hearted_a physician_n how_o unreasonable_a be_v it_o to_o prescribe_v the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o universal_a obedience_n to_o he_o out_o of_o love_n as_o the_o mean_n of_o cure_n for_o those_o that_o see_v nothing_o but_o wrath_n and_o enmity_n in_o god_n towards_o they_o in_o their_o present_a condition_n what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o require_v a_o man_n to_o work_v without_o strength_n promise_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v strength_n when_o his_o work_n be_v do_v for_o comfort_n and_o fortitude_n be_v so_o call_v because_o it_o comfort_v and_o strengthen_v true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o law_n which_o be_v the_o ministration_n of_o condemnation_n oblige_v they_o to_o obedience_n but_o our_o merciful_a god_n expect_v no_o sincere_a performance_n of_o his_o law_n from_o such_o impotent_a miserable_a wretch_n in_o order_n to_o their_o salvation_n by_o christ_n till_o he_o have_v first_o deliver_v they_o in_o some_o measure_n from_o those_o discomfort_n slavish_a fear_n and_o despondency_n that_o hold_v they_o captive_a under_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n we_o may_v require_v a_o strong_a healthy_a person_n first_o to_o work_v and_o then_o to_o expect_v meat_n drink_v and_o wage_n but_o a_o faint_a famish_a person_n must_v first_o have_v food_n or_o a_o revive_a cordial_n to_o strengthen_v his_o heart_n before_o he_o can_v work_v six_o both_o scripture_n and_o experience_n show_v that_o this_o be_v the_o method_n whereby_o god_n bring_v his_o people_n from_o sin_n to_o holiness_n though_o some_o of_o they_o be_v bring_v under_o terror_n for_o a_o while_n that_o sin_n may_v be_v the_o more_o embitter_v and_o the_o salvation_n of_o christ_n render_v more_o precious_a and_o acceptable_a to_o they_o yet_o such_o be_v again_o deliver_v from_o their_o terror_n by_o the_o comfort_n of_o god_n salvation_n that_o they_o may_v be_v fit_v for_o holiness_n and_o general_o a_o holy_a life_n begin_v with_o comfort_n and_o be_v maintain_v by_o it_o god_n give_v to_o adam_n at_o his_o first_o creation_n the_o comfort_n of_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n and_o the_o happiness_n of_o paradise_n to_o encourage_v he_o to_o obedience_n and_o when_o he_o have_v leave_v those_o comfort_n by_o the_o fall_n he_o be_v no_o long_o able_a to_o obey_v until_o he_o be_v restore_v by_o new_a comfort_n of_o the_o promise_a seed_n christ_n the_o second_o adam_n set_v god_n always_o before_o his_o face_n and_o he_o know_v that_o because_o god_n be_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v move_v therefore_o his_o heart_n be_v glad_a and_o his_o glory_n rejoice_v psal_n 16.8_o 9_o this_o make_v he_o willing_a to_o bear_v his_o agony_n and_o bloody_a sweat_n and_o to_o be_v obedient_a unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n god_n draw_v the_o israelite_n to_o obedience_n with_o the_o cord_n of_o a_o man_n with_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n by_o take_v off_o the_o yoke_n on_o their_o jaw_n and_o lay_v meat_n before_o they_o hos_n 11.4_o david_n tell_v we_o for_o our_o instruction_n how_o he_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o holy_a conversation_n thy_o love_a kindness_n be_v before_o my_o eye_n and_o i_o have_v walk_v in_o thy_o truth_n psal_n 26.3_o lord_n i_o have_v hope_v for_o thy_o salvation_n and_o do_v thy_o commandment_n psal_n 119.166_o we_o have_v several_a example_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o the_o joy_n that_o sinner_n have_v in_o the_o first_o receive_v of_o christ_n act_v 2.41_o and_o when_o the_o gospel_n first_o come_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o they_o receive_v the_o word_n in_o much_o affliction_n with_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o thess_n 1.4_o 5._o
forego_n direction_n that_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o duty_n with_o which_o a_o holy_a life_n be_v to_o begin_v and_o by_o which_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o other_o holy_a duty_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v before_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o christ_n himself_o with_o all_o endowment_n necessary_a to_o enable_v we_o to_o a_o holy_a practice_n be_v receive_v actual_o into_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n this_o be_v the_o unite_n grace_n whereby_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n knit_v the_o knot_n of_o mystical_a marriage_n betwixt_o christ_n and_o we_o and_o make_v we_o branch_n of_o that_o noble_a vine_n member_n of_o that_o body_n join_v to_o that_o excellent_a head_n live_v stone_n of_o the_o spiritual_a temple_n build_v upon_o the_o precious_a live_a cornerstone_n and_o sure_a foundation_n partaker_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o drink_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n this_o be_v the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o pass_v from_o our_o corrupt_a natural_a state_n to_o a_o new_a holy_a state_n in_o christ_n also_o from_o death_n in_o sin_n to_o life_n in_o righteousness_n and_o whereby_o we_o be_v comfort_v that_o so_o we_o may_v be_v establish_v in_o every_o good_a word_n and_o work_n if_o we_o put_v the_o question_n what_o must_v we_o do_v that_o we_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n christ_n resolve_v it_o that_o we_o believe_v on_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v joh._n 6.28_o 29._o he_o put_v we_o first_o upon_o the_o work_n of_o believe_v which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o eminence_n the_o work_n of_o work_n because_o all_o other_o good_a work_n proceed_v from_o it_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o present_a direction_n be_v to_o put_v you_o upon_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o great_a work_n of_o believe_v on_o christ_n and_o to_o guide_v you_o therein_o for_o which_o end_n you_o be_v to_o consider_v distinct_o four_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o 1._o the_o first_o be_v you_o be_v to_o make_v it_o your_o diligent_a endeavour_n to_o perform_v the_o great_a work_n of_o believe_v on_o christ_n many_o make_v little_a conscience_n of_o this_o duty_n it_o be_v not_o know_v by_o natural_a light_n as_o many_o moral_a duty_n be_v but_o only_o by_o supernatural_a revelation_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o be_v foolishness_n to_o the_o natural_a man._n these_o be_v sometime_o terrify_v with_o apprehension_n of_o other_o sin_n and_o will_v examine_v themselves_o concern_v they_o and_o it_o may_v be_v will_v write_v they_o down_o to_o help_v their_o memory_n and_o devotion_n but_o the_o great_a sin_n of_o not_o believe_v on_o christ_n be_v seldom_o think_v of_o in_o their_o self-examination_n or_o register_v in_o the_o large_a catalogue_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o even_o those_o who_o be_v convince_v that_o believe_v on_o christ_n be_v a_o duty_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n do_v neglect_v all_o diligent_a endeavour_n to_o perform_v it_o either_o because_o they_o account_v that_o it_o be_v a_o motion_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o perform_v at_o any_o time_n without_o any_o labour_n or_o diligent_a endeavour_n or_o on_o the_o contrary_a because_o they_o account_v it_o as_o difficult_a as_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o utter_o impossible_a for_o they_o to_o perform_v by_o their_o most_o diligent_a endeavour_n except_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v it_o in_o they_o by_o its_o mighty_a power_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o they_o to_o work_v until_o they_o feel_v this_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o their_o heart_n or_o because_o they_o account_v it_o a_o duty_n so_o peculiar_a to_o the_o elect_n that_o it_o will_v be_v presumption_n for_o they_o to_o endeavour_v the_o performance_n of_o it_o until_o they_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n through_o christ_n i_o shall_v urge_v you_o to_o a_o diligent_a performance_n of_o this_o duty_n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o impediment_n by_o the_o follow_a consideration_n it_o be_v worthy_a of_o our_o best_a endeavour_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o preciousness_n excellency_n and_o necessity_n of_o it_o already_o discover_v if_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n be_v not_o darken_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n than_o it_o will_v show_v we_o that_o we_o can_v of_o ourselves_o find_v out_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n and_o will_v condemn_v those_o that_o despise_v that_o revelation_n of_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o in_o the_o gospel_n declare_v in_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o great_a end_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v for_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n rom._n 1.5_o that_o so_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o christ_n and_o all_o other_o obedience_n yea_o the_o great_a end_n of_o all_o reveal_v doctrine_n in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n by_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n 2_o cor._n 3.15_o the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n give_v by_o moses_n be_v for_o righteousness_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v rom._n 10.4_o and_o christ_n be_v that_o end_n for_o righteousness_n the_o moral_a law_n itself_o be_v reveal_v in_o order_n to_o our_o salvation_n by_o believe_v on_o christ_n or_o else_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o have_v nothing_o avail_v fall_v man_n that_o be_v unable_a to_o perform_v it_o therefore_o they_o that_o slight_a the_o duty_n of_o believe_v and_o count_v it_o foolishness_n do_v thereby_o slight_a despise_v and_o villisie_n the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n and_o christ_n himself_o be_v become_v of_o none_o effect_v to_o the_o salvation_n of_o such_o the_o only_a fruit_n that_o such_o a_o one_o can_v attain_v to_o of_o all_o the_o save_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v only_o some_o hypocritical_a moral_a duty_n and_o slavish_a performance_n which_o will_v be_v as_o filthy_a rag_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n in_o the_o great_a day_n however_o many_o mind_n not_o the_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n in_o their_o self-examination_n and_o write_v it_o not_o in_o their_o scroul_n yet_o let_v they_o know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o pernicious_a sin_n of_o all_o all_o the_o sin_n in_o their_o scroul_n will_v not_o prevail_v to_o their_o condemnation_n yea_o they_o will_v not_o prevail_v in_o their_o conversation_n be_v it_o not_o for_o their_o unbelief_n this_o one_o sin_n prevail_v make_v it_o impossible_a for_o they_o to_o please_v god_n in_o any_o duty_n whatsoever_o heb._n 11.6_o if_o you_o will_v not_o mind_v this_o one_o main_a sin_n now_o god_n will_v at_o last_o mind_n you_o of_o it_o with_o a_o vengeance_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o on_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o joh._n 3.36_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n in_o flame_a fire_n take_v vengeance_n on_o those_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 2_o thes_n 1.5_o 2._o believe_v on_o christ_n be_v a_o work_n that_o will_v require_v diligent_a endeavour_n and_o labour_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o we_o must_v labour_v to_o enter_v into_o that_o rest_n lest_o any_o man_n fall_v by_o unbelief_n heb._n 4.11_o we_o must_v show_v diligence_n to_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o hope_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v be_v follower_n of_o they_o who_o through_o faith_n and_o patience_n inherit_v the_o promise_n heb._n 6.11_o 12._o it_o be_v a_o work_n that_o require_v the_o exercise_n of_o may_v and_o power_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v need_v to_o be_v strengthen_v with_o might_n by_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o inward_a man_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n eph._n 3.16_o 17._o i_o confess_v it_o be_v easy_a pleasant_a and_o delicious_a in_o its_o own_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v a_o motion_n of_o the_o heart_n without_o any_o cumbersome_a bodily_a labour_n and_o it_o be_v a_o take_v christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n as_o our_o own_o which_o be_v very_o comfortable_a and_o delightful_a and_o the_o soul_n be_v carry_v forth_o in_o this_o by_o love_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o happiness_n which_o be_v a_o affection_n which_o make_v even_o hard_o work_v easy_a and_o pleasant_a yet_o it_o be_v make_v difficult_a to_o we_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o opposition_n that_o it_o meet_v withal_o from_o our_o own_o inward_a corruption_n and_o from_o satan_n temptation_n it_o be_v no_o easy_a matter_n to_o receive_v christ_n as_o our_o happiness_n and_o true_a salvation_n with_o true_a confidence_n and_o lively_a affection_n when_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n lie_v heavy_o upon_o the_o conscience_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n manifest_v by_o the_o word_n and_o terrible_a judgement_n especial_o when_o we_o have_v be_v
necessary_a to_o the_o very_o be_v there_o of_o because_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v christ_n as_o manifest_v by_o the_o word_n as_o i_o have_v before_o prove_v raab_n the_o canaanite_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n before_o she_o have_v any_o visible_a commuion_n with_o the_o church_n in_o any_o of_o god_n ordinance_n yet_o not_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n even_o the_o same_o word_n for_o substance_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v then_o extant_a in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n though_o that_o word_n be_v not_o bring_v to_o she_o by_o any_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o by_o the_o preach_a of_o any_o holy_a minister_n but_o by_o the_o report_n of_o the_o heathen_n josh_n 2.9_o 11._o but_o here_o our_o great_a work_n must_v be_v to_o get_v such_o a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n as_o be_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o guide_v we_o in_o receive_v of_o christ_n and_o walk_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n you_o must_v not_o be_v of_o their_o mind_n that_o think_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n or_o that_o will_v have_v mystery_n to_o remain_v hide_v from_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o vulgar_a and_o nothing_o to_o be_v preach_v to_o they_o but_o that_o they_o can_v ready_o assent_v to_o and_o receive_v by_o the_o light_n that_o be_v in_o all_o man_n of_o which_o mind_n it_o may_v be_v some_o minister_n be_v who_o unwit_o agree_v with_o the_o quaker_n in_o a_o fundamental_a of_o their_o heresy_n but_o you_o must_v endeavour_v chief_o to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o it_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n col._n 2.2_o 3._o which_o to_o know_v be_v life_n eternal_a and_o the_o ignorance_n of_o it_o be_v death_n eternal_a joh._n 17.3_o 2_o cor._n 4.3_o you_o must_v know_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n rom._n 10.4_o and_o therefore_o you_o must_v endeavour_v to_o know_v the_o command_n of_o the_o law_n not_o that_o you_o may_v be_v enable_v by_o that_o knowledge_n to_o practife_n they_o immediate_o and_o so_o to_o procure_v salvation_n by_o your_o work_n but_o rather_o by_o your_o knowledge_n of_o they_o you_o may_v be_v make_v sensible_a of_o your_o inablility_n to_o perform_v they_o and_o of_o the_o enmity_n that_o be_v in_o your_o heart_n against_o they_o and_o the_o wrath_n that_o you_o be_v under_o for_o break_v of_o they_o and_o the_o impossibility_n of_o be_v save_v by_o your_o own_o work_n that_o so_o you_o may_v flee_v to_o christ_n for_o refuge_n and_o trust_v only_o to_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n for_o justification_n and_o strength_n to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n acceptable_o through_o christ_n in_o your_o conversation_n and_o for_o this_o end_n you_o must_v endeavour_v to_o learn_v the_o utmost_a strictness_n of_o the_o command_n the_o exact_a perfection_n and_o spiritual_a purity_n which_o they_o require_v that_o you_o may_v be_v the_o more_o convince_v of_o sin_n and_o stire_v up_o to_o seek_v unto_o christ_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o purity_n of_o heart_n and_o spiritual_a obedience_n and_o be_v bring_v near_o to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o as_o christ_n testify_v that_o the_o scribel_n who_o understand_v the_o greatness_n of_o that_o command_n of_o love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o the_o heart_n and_o soul_n be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n mar._n 12.34_o the_o most_o effectual_a knowledge_n for_o your_o salvation_n be_v to_o understand_v these_o two_o point_n the_o desperate_a sinfulness_n and_o misery_n of_o your_o own_o natural_a condition_n and_o the_o alone_a sufficiency_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n for_o your_o salvation_n that_o you_o may_v be_v abase_v as_o to_o the_o flesh_n and_o exalt_v in_o christ_n alone_o and_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o these_o two_o main_a point_n you_o shall_v learn_v how_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o second_o rom._n 5.14_o how_o sin_n and_o death_n come_v upon_o all_o the_o natural_a seed_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n by_o his_o disobedience_n in_o eat_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n and_o how_o righteousness_n and_o everlasting_a life_n come_v upon_o all_o the_o spiritual_a seed_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n jesus_n christ_n by_o his_o obedience_n unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n you_o also_o shall_v learn_v the_o true_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o two_o covenant_n the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a or_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o former_a shut_v we_o up_o under_o the_o gild_n and_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o his_o curse_n by_o its_o rigorous_a term_n do_v all_o the_o commandment_n and_o live_v and_o curse_a be_v you_o if_o you_o do_v they_o not_o and_o fail_v in_o the_o least_o point_n the_o latter_a open_v the_o gate_n of_o righteousness_n and_o life_n to_o all_o believer_n i._n e._n the_o new_a covenant_n by_o its_o gracious_a term_n believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o live_v i._n e._n all_o your_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v and_o holiness_n and_o glory_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o you_o free_o by_o his_o merit_n and_o spirit_n furthermore_o you_o shall_v learn_v the_o gospel_n principle_n that_o you_o be_v to_o walk_v by_o for_o the_o attainment_n of_o holiness_n in_o christ_n and_o here_o i_o shall_v mind_v you_o particular_o that_o you_o will_v be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o christian_a learning_n if_o you_o get_v a_o good_a understanding_n of_o the_o 6_o and_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o the_o roman_n where_o the_o powerful_a principle_n of_o sanctification_n be_v purposely_o treat_v of_o and_o difference_v from_o those_o weak_a and_o ineffectual_a principle_n which_o we_o be_v most_o natural_o prone_a to_o walk_v by_o i_o need_v not_o particular_o commend_v any_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n to_o your_o learning_n for_o if_o you_o get_v the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o principal_a point_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v and_o improve_v it_o to_o a_o right_a end_n which_o be_v to_o live_v and_o walk_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n your_o own_o renew_a mind_n will_v covet_v the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o life_n and_o godliness_n and_o if_o in_o any_o thing_n you_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v than_o be_v according_a to_o save_v truth_n god_n shall_v reveal_v even_o this_o unto_o you_o phil._n 3.15_o yet_o let_v i_o caution_n you_o lest_o instead_o of_o gain_v christ_n by_o your_o knowledge_n you_o rather_o lose_v he_o by_o put_v your_o knowledge_n in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n and_o trust_v on_o it_o for_o your_o salvation_n one_o cause_n of_o the_o jew_n perish_v be_v that_o they_o rest_v in_o a_o form_n of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o law_n rom._n 2.20_o and_o doubtless_o all_o that_o many_o christian_n will_v gain_v by_o their_o knowledge_n in_o the_o end_n will_v only_o be_v to_o be_v beat_v with_o more_o stripe_n because_o they_o place_v their_o religion_n and_o salvation_n chief_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o lord_n will_v and_o in_o their_o ability_n to_o talk_v and_o dispute_v of_o it_o though_o it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n at_o the_o tavern_n or_o alebench_n without_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o do_v according_a thereunto_o luk._n 12.47_o much_o less_o be_v you_o to_o place_v your_o religion_n and_o hope_n of_o salvation_n in_o a_o daily_a task_n of_o read_v chapter_n or_o repeat_v sermon_n without_o understand_v more_o than_o the_o papist_n do_v their_o lesson_n in_o the_o latin_a mass_n and_o canonical_a hour_n as_o sad_a experience_n show_v that_o many_o seem_o devout_a and_o frequent_a hearer_n of_o the_o word_n do_v notwithstanding_o remain_v in_o lamentable_a and_o wonderful_a ignorance_n of_o the_o save_a truth_n and_o in_o they_o be_v fulfil_v the_o prophecy_n of_o isaias_n that_o in_o hear_v they_o shall_v hear_v and_o not_o understand_v and_o in_o see_v they_o shall_v see_v etc._n etc._n mat._n 13.14_o 15._o 2._o another_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v diligent_o for_o the_o promote_a of_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n be_v examination_n of_o our_o state_n and_o way_n according_a to_o the_o word_n whether_o we_o be_v at_o present_a in_o a_o state_n of_o sin_n and_o wrath_n or_o of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n that_o if_o we_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o sin_n we_o may_v know_v our_o sickness_n and_o come_v to_o the_o great_a physician_n while_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n and_o if_o we_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n w_n may_v know_v that_o we_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o assure_v our_o heart_n before_o god_n with_o the_o great_a confidence_n by_o
the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n 1_o joh._n 3.19_o 21._o that_o so_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v more_o strong_o comfort_v by_o faith_n and_o establish_v in_o every_o good_a work_n and_o that_o if_o our_o way_n be_v evil_a we_o may_v turn_v from_o they_o to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n through_o christ_n without_o who_o none_o come_v to_o the_o father_n lam._n 3.40_o joh._n 14.6_o but_o your_o great_a care_n in_o this_o work_n of_o self-examination_n must_v be_v to_o perform_v it_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o it_o may_v not_o hinder_v and_o destroy_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o do_v in_o many_o instead_o of_o promote_a it_o therefore_o beware_v lest_o you_o trust_v upon_o your_o self-examination_n rather_o than_o upon_o christ_n as_o some_o do_v that_o think_v they_o have_v make_v their_o peace_n with_o god_n mere_o because_o they_o have_v examine_v themselves_o upon_o their_o sickbed_n or_o before_o the_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n though_o they_o have_v find_v themselves_o stark_o nought_o and_o do_v not_o depend_v on_o christ_n to_o make_v they_o better_o but_o on_o their_o own_o deceitful_a purpose_n and_o resolution_n think_v not_o that_o you_o must_v begin_v this_o work_n with_o doubt_v whether_o god_n will_v extend_v mercy_n to_o you_o and_o save_v you_o and_o that_o you_o must_v leave_v this_o a_o question_n whole_o under_o debate_n until_o you_o have_v find_v out_o how_o to_o resolve_v it_o by_o self-examination_n this_o be_v a_o common_a and_o very_a pernicious_a error_n in_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o this_o work_n which_o be_v hereby_o lay_v in_o the_o great_a sin_n of_o unbelief_n which_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o prevail_v do_v by_o its_o great_a influence_n dash_v and_o obscure_v all_o inward_a gracious_a qualification_n of_o peace_n hope_n joy_n love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o people_n before_o they_o be_v at_o all_o try_v whether_o they_o can_v give_v any_o good_a evidence_n for_o their_o salvation_n and_o it_o make_v people_n willing_a to_o think_v their_o own_o qualification_n better_a than_o they_o be_v lest_o they_o shall_v fall_v into_o a_o utter_a despair_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o thus_o it_o whole_o mar_v the_o good_a work_n of_o self-examination_n and_o make_v it_o destructive_a to_o our_o soul_n for_o to_o they_o that_o be_v defile_v and_o unbelieving_a there_o be_v nothing_o pure_a tit._n 1.15_o you_o shall_v rather_o begin_v the_o work_n with_o much_o assurance_n of_o faith_n that_o though_o you_o find_v your_o heart_n never_o so_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a at_o present_a as_o many_o of_o god_n choice_a servant_n do_v often_o find_v yet_o the_o door_n of_o mercy_n be_v open_a for_o you_o and_o that_o god_n will_v certain_o save_v you_o for_o ever_o if_o you_o put_v your_o trust_n in_o his_o grace_n through_o christ_n i_o have_v former_o show_v that_o this_o confident_a persuasion_n be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o save_a faith_n and_o that_o we_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o it_o in_o the_o free_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o we_o walk_v in_o darkness_n and_o can_v see_v no_o light_n shine_v forth_o in_o our_o gracious_a qualification_n if_o we_o begin_v the_o work_n with_o this_o confidence_n it_o will_v make_v we_o impartial_a and_o not_o afraid_a to_o find_v out_o the_o worst_a by_o ourselves_o and_o willing_a to_o judge_v that_o our_o heart_n be_v deceitful_a above_o all_o thing_n and_o desperate_o wicked_a beyond_o what_o we_o can_v find_v out_o jer._n 17.9_o and_o if_o we_o have_v any_o holy_a qualification_n this_o confidence_n will_v preserve_v they_o in_o their_o vigour_n and_o brightness_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o give_v clear_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v at_o present_a in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n mark_v well_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o question_n whether_o god_n will_v gracious_o accept_v and_o save_v i_o though_o a_o vile_a sinner_n through_o christ_n as_o before_o be_v say_v and_o whether_o i_o be_o already_o bring_v into_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n the_o former_a of_o these_o i_o say_v be_v to_o be_v resolve_v affirmative_o by_o a_o confident_a faith_n in_o christ_n the_o latter_a only_o be_v to_o be_v inquire_v into_o by_o self-examination_n misspend_a not_o your_o time_n as_o many_o do_v in_o pore_v upon_o your_o heart_n to_o find_v whether_o you_o be_v good_a enough_o to_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o your_o salvation_n nor_o to_o find_v whether_o you_o have_v any_o faith_n before_o you_o dare_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o act_v faith_n in_o christ_n but_o know_v that_o though_o you_o can_v find_v that_o you_o have_v any_o faith_n or_o holiness_n yet_o if_o you_o will_v now_o believe-on_a he_o that_o justify_v the_o ungodly_a it_o shall_v be_v account_v to_o you_o for_o righteousness_n rom._n 4.5_o and_o if_o you_o love_v christ_n and_o your_o own_o soul_n misspend_v not_o your_o time_n in_o examine_v whether_o you_o have_v commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n except_o it_o be_v with_o a_o full_a purpose_n to_o assure_v yourself_o more_o and_o more_o that_o you_o be_v not_o guilty_a thereof_o for_o any_o doubtfulness_n in_o this_o point_n will_v but_o harden_v you_o in_o unbelief_n remember_v well_o that_o the_o question_n to_o be_v resolve_v be_v whether_o you_o be_v at_o present_a in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o resolve_v it_o you_o must_v be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o best_a by_o yourself_o as_o well_o as_o the_o worst_a and_o you_o must_v not_o think_v that_o humility_n bind_v you_o to_o overlook_v your_o good_a qualification_n and_o to_o take_v notice_n only_o of_o your_o corruption_n but_o your_o great_a work_n must_v be_v to_o find_v whether_o there_o be_v not_o some_o drop_n of_o save_a grace_n in_o the_o ocean_n of_o your_o corruption_n and_o it_o will_v consist_v well_o with_o humility_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o own_o any_o spark_n of_o true_a holiness_n that_o be_v in_o you_o because_o the_o praise_n and_o glory_n of_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o you_o but_o to_o god_n phil._n 1.11_o and_o you_o must_v try_v inherent_a grace_n by_o the_o touchstone_n not_o by_o the_o measure_n by_o its_o nature_n not_o its_o degree_n not_o deny_v any_o lusting_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o you_o because_o of_o the_o strong_a lusting_n of_o the_o flesh_n against_o the_o spirit_n nor_o deny_v that_o you_o be_v spiritual_a in_o some_o degree_n and_o babe_n in_o christ_n because_o you_o find_v yourselves_o carnal_a in_o a_o more_o prevail_a degree_n and_o the_o old_a man_n big_a than_o the_o new_a gal._n 5.17_o 1_o cor._n 3.1_o especial_o you_o be_v to_o examine_v and_o prove_v whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n for_o if_o you_o make_v sure_a of_o this_o you_o make_v sure_a of_o all_o the_o thing_n that_o pertain_v to_o life_n and_o godliness_n and_o if_o you_o doubt_v of_o this_o you_o will_v certain_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o other_o qualification_n and_o will_v suspect_v they_o to_o be_v mere_o carnal_a and_o counterfeit_n because_o it_o be_v a_o know_a truth_n that_o to_o the_o vnbelieve_v there_o be_v nothing_o pure_a and_o that_o all_o that_o have_v not_o true_o receive_v christ_n by_o faith_n be_v at_o present_a in_o a_o unregenerate_a state_n though_o they_o seem_v never_o so_o pure_a and_o godly_a 2_o cor._n 13.5_o tit._n 1.15_o and_o let_v not_o the_o issue_n of_o this_o trial_n depend_v at_o all_o upon_o your_o knowledge_n of_o the_o time_n when_o or_o of_o the_o sermon_n conference_n or_o place_n of_o scripture_n by_o which_o you_o be_v first_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n though_o that_o be_v good_a to_o know_v too_o if_o it_o may_v be_v and_o some_o who_o have_v former_o live_v in_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o in_o a_o manifest_a opposition_n to_o true_a faith_n and_o holiness_n may_v know_v such_o circumstance_n of_o their_o conversion_n and_o may_v reflect_v upon_o they_o comfortable_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v who_o be_v turn_v of_o a_o sudden_a from_o his_o persecute_v rage_n to_o be_v a_o disciple_n and_o a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n yet_o other_o sincere_a believer_n may_v be_v whole_o ignorant_a of_o they_o as_o john_n the_o baptist_n who_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o his_o mother_n womb_n luk._n 1.15_o and_o they_o that_o have_v be_v train_v up_o religious_o and_o know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n from_o their_o childhood_n as_o timothy_n 2._o tim._n 3.15_o yea_o and_o many_o that_o be_v first_o turn_v from_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o profaneness_n to_o some_o external_a reformation_n and_o then_o in_o process_n of_o time_n bring_v near_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o insensible_a degree_n before_o they_o be_v real_o new_a beget_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v also_o some_o that_o deceive_v their_o soul_n by_o imagine_v that_o
this_o mercy-seat_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n favourableness_n to_o a_o sinful_a people_n in_o reside_v among_o they_o and_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heb._n 9.5_o now_o this_o doctrine_n appear_v confirm_v for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o christ_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o sin_n and_o punishment_n wrath_n and_o curse_n tit._n 2.14_o he_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n he_o give_v himself_o to_o death_n for_o we_o be_v deliver_v for_o our_o offence_n his_o death_n be_v the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v in_o god_n sight_n god_n give_v he_o up_o to_o death_n he_o spare_v he_o not_o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v righteousness_n 1_o cor._n 1.30_o and_o mat._n 20.28_o he_o give_v his_o own_o life_n a_o ransom_n for_o many_o and_o so_o 1_o tim._n 2.6_o he_o hereby_o buy_v we_o by_o this_o price_n 1_o cor._n 6.6_o he_o redeem_v we_o not_o with_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o with_o his_o precious_a blood_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n without_o spot_n 1_o pet._n 1.18_o 19_o 2_o pet_n 2.1_o rev._n 5.9_o he_o suffer_v the_o penalty_n due_a to_o we_o for_o sin_n 1_o pet._n 2.24_o he_o bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n gal._n 3.13_o he_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o thereby_o redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v a_o curse_n he_o be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o 2_o cor._n 5.21_o isa_n 53.5_o 6._o he_o subject_v himself_o to_o the_o law_n both_o in_o active_a as_o well_o as_o passive_a obedience_n gal._n 4_o 4._o and_o obey_v his_o father_n even_o to_o death_n do_v and_o suffer_v at_o his_o commandment_n john_n 14.31_o heb._n 10.7_o and_o his_o obedience_n be_v for_o our_o justification_n compare_v rom._n 5.19_o with_o phil._n 2.8_o so_o christ_n satisfy_v both_o for_o our_o debt_n of_o righteousness_n and_o debt_n of_o punishment_n for_o our_o faultiness_n taint_v of_o sin_n and_o want_v of_o righteousness_n as_o well_o as_o for_o our_o guilt_n and_o obnoxiousness_n to_o punishment_n that_o we_o may_v be_v free_a from_o wrath_n and_o deem_v righteous_a in_o god_n sight_n his_o suffer_v be_v the_o consummate_v act_n of_o redemption_n and_o so_o all_o be_v attribute_v to_o it_o heb._n 2.9_o 10._o even_o to_o his_o blood_n though_o other_o do_n and_o suffering_n concur_v 2_o cor._n 8.9_o we_o be_v righteous_a by_o he_o as_o we_o be_v guilty_a by_o adam_n rom._n 5.12_o 2_o god_n accept_v this_o price_n as_o a_o satisfaction_n to_o his_o justice_n which_o he_o show_v in_o raise_v christ_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o so_o acquit_v he_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n he_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o spirit_n 1_o tim._n 3._o ult_n for_o we_o rom._n 4._o ult_n raise_v for_o our_o justification_n see_v rom._n 8.34_o it_o be_v god_n that_o justifi_v who_o be_v he_o that_o condemn_v it_o be_v christ_n that_o die_v yea_o rather_o that_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o heb._n 10.5_o 14._o by_o one_o offer_v he_o have_v perfect_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v and_o eph._n 5.1_o 2._o this_o sacrifice_n be_v a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n unto_o god_n if_o christ_n have_v sink_v under_o the_o weight_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o be_v raise_v the_o payment_n have_v not_o be_v finish_v and_o so_o the_o debt_n not_o discharge_v john_n 16.10_o of_o righteousness_n because_o i_o go_v to_o my_o father_n 3._o this_o righteousness_n be_v in_o christ_n as_o to_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v have_v except_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o have_v christ_n so_o the_o text_n express_v and_o show_v that_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n and_o as_o so_o he_o be_v our_o righteousness_n 1_o cor._n 1.30_o we_o have_v redemption_n and_o righteousness_n in_o he_o eph._n 1.7_o 2_o cor._n 5.21_o and_o therein_o our_o freedom_n from_o condemnation_n rom._n 5.1_o christ_n die_v that_o his_o seed_n may_v be_v justify_v isa_n 53.10_o 11._o those_o that_o be_v in_o he_o by_o spiritual_a regeneration_n 1_o cor._n 4.15_o observe_v vi_o the_o formal_a cause_n of_o justification_n or_o that_o wherein_o it_o consist_v be_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n i._n e._n not_o only_o the_o gild_n and_o punishment_n be_v remove_v but_o fault_n because_o it_o be_v a_o pardon_n ground_v on_o justice_n which_o clear_v the_o fault_n also_o by_o he_o we_o be_v justify_v from_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o law_n charge_v we_o with_o act._n 13.39_o in_o man_n subject_a to_o a_o law_n there_o be_v no_o middle_a condition_n between_o not_o impute_v of_o sin_n and_o impute_v of_o righteousness_n and_o so_o these_o term_n be_v use_v as_o equivalent_a act._n 13.36_o 39_o through_o this_o man_n be_v preach_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o by_o he_o all_o that_o believe_v be_v justify_v etc._n etc._n rom._n 4.6_o 8._o 2_o cor._n 15.19_o 21._o rom_n 5.17_o this_o be_v through_o the_o bloodshed_n of_o christ_n eph._n 1.7_o mat._n 26.28_o observe_v vii_o god_n justifi_v a_o sinner_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n faith_n be_v the_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o receive_v this_o benefit_n faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 1._o this_o faith_n be_v believe_v on_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o he_o gal._n 2.16_o know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n even_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n we_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o justification_n out_o of_o a_o sense_n of_o our_o inability_n to_o obtain_v justification_n by_o work_n 2._o this_o faith_n do_v not_o justify_v we_o as_o a_o act_n of_o righteousness_n earn_v and_o procure_v our_o justification_n by_o the_o work_n of_o it_o for_o this_o will_v have_v be_v justification_n by_o work_n as_o under_o the_o law_n diametrical_o opposite_a to_o grace_n and_o free_a gift_n which_o exclude_v all_o consideration_n of_o any_o work_n of_o we_o to_o be_v our_o righteousness_n under_o any_o denomination_n or_o diminutive_a term_n whatever_o whether_o you_o will_v call_v it_o legal_a or_o evangelical_n though_o you_o reckon_v it_o no_o more_o than_o the_o payment_n of_o a_o pepper-corn_n rom._n 11.6_o faith_n in_o this_o case_n be_v count_v he_o not_o work_v rom._n 4.5_o and_o it_o be_v not_o faith_n that_o stand_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n which_o satisfi_v for_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v or_o suffer_v as_o have_v be_v show_v 3._o god_n justifi_v by_o faith_n as_o the_o instrument_n whereby_o we_o receive_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v proper_o and_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o metonymical_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o righteousness_n receive_v by_o it_o and_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n and_o christ_n be_v all_o one_o gal._n 3.8_o rom._n 5.1_o by_o faith_n we_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n act._n 26.18_o and_o chap._n 10_o 43._o it_o be_v effect_n be_v the_o reception_n of_o justification_n not_o the_o work_n of_o it_o as_o a_o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v maintain_v by_o his_o hand_n or_o nourish_v by_o his_o mouth_n when_o those_o do_v but_o receive_v that_o which_o nourish_v his_o food_n and_o drink_n the_o cup_n be_v put_v for_o the_o liquor_n in_o the_o cup_n 1_o cor._n 11.26_o 27._o see_v rom._n 1.17_o and_o 13.22_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n eph._n 3.17_o perceive_v eat_v drink_v joh._n 1.12_o chap._n 9.49_o 53._o 4._o this_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v exclusive_o to_o all_o our_o work_n for_o justification_n we_o defend_v against_o the_o papist_n justification_n by_o faith_n only_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o sully_v express_v in_o scripture_n phrase_n rom._n 3.28_o gal._n 2.16_o phil._n 3.8_o 9_o rom._n 4.16_o 5._o we_o must_v understand_v faith_n in_o a_o full_a sense_n of_o receive_v remission_n of_o the_o salt_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o punishment_n we_o believe_v that_o god_n account_v not_o the_o fault_n to_o we_o of_o the_o least_o sin_n and_o where_o faith_n be_v say_v to_o be_v account_v for_o righteousness_n it_o be_v because_o of_o the_o object_n it_o receive_v rom._n 4.6_o 7_o 8._o 2_o cor._n 5.19_o 21._o we_o believe_v christ_n righteousness_n impute_v to_o we_o as_o our_o sin_n to_o he_o or_o else_o we_o receive_v not_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o believe_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o charge_v we_o with_o sin_n and_o condemnation_n which_o charge_v signify_v impute_v sin_n rom._n 8.33_o 34_o together_o
of_o god_n by_o faith_n i._n e._n the_o redeem_n and_o propitiation-righteousness_n of_o christ_n whereby_o he_o desire_v only_o to_o be_v justify_v and_o which_o he_o believe_v in_o for_o that_o end_n oppose_v it_o to_o any_o thing_n inherent_a in_o himself_o which_o therefore_o he_o call_v his_o own_o righteousness_n phil._n 3.6_o 8_o 9_o rom._n 4.5_o 3._o do_v thou_o trust_v with_o any_o confidence_n in_o christ_n not_o continue_v in_o a_o mere_a suspense_n in_o a_o way_n of_o mere_a doubt_v we_o can_v receive_v no_o good_a thing_n from_o god_n james_n 1_o 6_o 7._o mere_a doubt_v will_v not_o loose_v the_o conscience_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n heb._n 10.22_o but_o leave_v the_o soul_n under_o terror_n abraham_n confidence_n be_v the_o example_n and_o pattern_n of_o our_o justify_n say_v that_o we_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o come_v up_o unto_o believe_v with_o a_o fullness_n of_o persuasion_n in_o hope_n against_o hope_n rom._n 4.20_o 24._o though_o a_o believe_a soul_n may_v be_v assault_v with_o many_o doubt_n but_o it_o fight_v against_o they_o and_o do_v not_o give_v up_o itself_o to_o the_o dominion_n of_o they_o psal_n 42.11_o mar●_n 9.24_o it_o have_v always_o some_o thing_n contrary_a to_o they_o and_o strive_v with_o they_o 4._o do_v thou_o come_v to_o christ_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o right_a end_n namely_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n before_o the_o live_a god_n heb._n 9.14_o psal_n 130._o tit._n 2.14_o 1_o pet._n 2.24_o otherwise_o thou_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o for_o the_o right_a end_n and_o desire_v not_o real_o the_o favour_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v in_o friendship_n with_o he_o 5._o do_v thou_o walk_v in_o holiness_n and_o strive_v to_o evidence_n this_o justification_n by_o the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n in_o good_a work_n otherwise_o thy_o faith_n be_v but_o a_o dead_a faith_n for_o a_o true_a faith_n purify_v the_o heart_n act._n 15.9_o if_o christ_n be_v thou_o he_o will_v be_v sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o righteousness_n 1_o cor._n 1.30_o rom._n 8.1.9_o joh._n 13.8_o if_o god_n have_v take_v thou_o into_o his_o favour_n he_o will_v doubtless_o cleanse_v thou_o though_o faith_n alone_o justify_v without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o work_n to_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n yet_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o so_o alone_o as_o not_o to_o be_v accompany_v with_o good_a work_n as_o the_o eye_n alone_o see_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o alone_o without_o other_o member_n so_o the_o apostle_n james_n declare_v faith_n that_o be_v alone_o to_o be_v dead_a and_o bid_v we_o show_v our_o faith_n by_o our_o work_n which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o as_o if_o work_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o attain_v justification_n but_o sure_a evidence_n of_o justification_n attain_v by_o faith_n and_o very_o necessary_a jam._n 2.14_o 15._o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o covenant_n of_o work_n require_v another_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n by_o do_v for_o life_n work_v justify_v we_o from_o such_o accusation_n of_o man_n as_o will_v deny_v we_o to_o have_v justification_n by_o faith_n or_o that_o we_o have_v a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n or_o be_v good_a tree_n mat._n 12.33_o 37._o not_o as_o be_v our_o righteousness_n themselves_o or_o condition_n of_o our_o have_v christ_n righteousness_n or_o qualify_a we_o for_o it_o use_v iii_o it_o serve_v for_o exhortation_n to_o several_a duty_n 1._o to_o the_o wicked_a its_o dehortation_n unto_o they_o from_o continuance_n in_o sin_n under_o god_n wrath_n run_v headlong_o to_o damnation_n for_o here_o be_v a_o door_n of_o mercy_n open_v to_o they_o a_o righteousness_n prepare_v that_o they_o may_v be_v free_o accept_v of_o god_n some_o man_n be_v desperado_n over_o shoe_n over_o boot_n they_o be_v resolve_v to_o run_v the_o risk_a of_o it_o and_o please_v themselves_o they_o shall_v speed_v as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o some_o man_n will_v be_v justify_v but_o seek_v for_o it_o in_o some_o wrong_a way_n some_o will_v go_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o quiet_v their_o conscience_n by_o his_o deceit_n some_o to_o their_o own_o work_n and_o performance_n but_o you_o be_v exhort_v to_o look_v out_o for_o the_o true_a righteousness_n christ_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n behold_v i_o behold_v i_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_a mercy_n and_o righteousness_n be_v free_o offer_v isa_n 55.6_o 7._o jer._n 3.12_o repentance_n be_v preach_v with_o remission_n of_o sin_n luk._n 24.47_o act._n 2.38_o beware_v you_o do_v not_o neglect_v this_o acceptable_a time_n this_o day_n of_o salvation_n heb._n 2.1_o for_o 1._o if_o you_o do_v you_o remain_v under_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n joh._n 3.36_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n which_o like_o a_o flood_n sweep_v away_o all_o that_o be_v find_v out_o of_o this_o ark_n the_o lord_n christ_n psal_n 11.5_o 6._o 2._o your_o condemnation_n will_v be_v aggravate_v by_o refuse_v so_o great_a salvation_n heb._n 2.3_o you_o will_v have_v no_o cloak_n for_o your_o sin_n when_o you_o refuse_v mercy_n joh._n 15.22_o you_o can_v say_v you_o be_v undo_v by_o your_o past_a sin_n beyond_o recovery_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o strive_v for_o behold_v remission_n of_o sin_n be_v proclaim_v unto_o you_o ezek._n 33.10_o 11._o and_o what_o a_o horrid_a sin_n be_v it_o to_o despise_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n joh._n 3.11_o obj._n i._n if_o god_n justify_v the_o ungodly_a what_o need_v i_o forsake_v ungodliness_n at_o all_o rom._n 6.1_o a._n thou_o can_v not_o seek_v justification_n true_o except_o thou_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o live_v to_o god_n in_o friendship_n with_o he_o for_o justification_n be_v god_n way_n of_o take_v we_o into_o friendship_n with_o he_o rom._n 5.1_o 2._o and_o of_o reconcile_a we_o 2_o cor._n 5.19_o the_o use_n that_o thou_o be_v to_o make_v of_o it_o it_o be_v to_o seek_v god_n friendship_n by_o it_o and_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o why_o do_v a_o man_n seek_v a_o pardon_n if_o he_o intend_v to_o go_v on_o in_o rebellion_n and_o stand_v out_o in_o desiance_n to_o his_o prince_n 1_o pet._n 2.24_o they_o seek_v pardon_n in_o a_o mock_a way_n that_o intend_v not_o to_o return_v to_o obedience_n gal._n 6.7_o 8._o obj._n ii_o my_o sin_n be_v so_o great_a that_o i_o have_v no_o encouragement_n to_o hope_v a._n christ_n righteousness_n be_v for_o all_o sort_n of_o sinner_n that_o believe_v whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_n and_o now_o great_a sinner_n be_v of_o both_o sort_n rom._n 1.2_o &_o 3._o and_o even_o for_o those_o that_o kill_v and_o murder_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n act._n 2._o for_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n 1_o tim._n 1.15_o act._n 16._o where_o sin_n abound_v grace_n superabound_v rom._n 5.20_o your_o sin_n be_v but_o the_o sin_n of_o a_o creature_n but_o his_o righteousness_n be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n joh._n 6.37_o rom._n 10.11_o 13._o exhort_v ii_o it_o exhort_v those_o that_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o turn_v to_o god_n to_o turn_v the_o right_a way_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n for_o justification_n let_v they_o not_o seek_v by_o work_n as_o most_o in_o the_o world_n do_v and_o all_o be_v prone_a to_o do_v rom._n 9.31_o 32._o but_o this_o doctrine_n seem_v very_o foolish_a yea_o pernicious_a to_o a_o natural_a man_n become_v a_o fool_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v wise_a 1_o cor._n 3.18_o otherwise_o you_o will_v labour_v in_o the_o sire_n and_o weary_a yourselves_o for_o very_a vanity_n and_o be_v under_o continual_a discomfort_n and_o discouragement_n for_o you_o can_v do_v no_o good_a work_n while_o you_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n under_o the_o law_n and_o its_o curse_n before_o god_n have_v receive_v you_o into_o favour_n for_o justification_n be_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o true_a holiness_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n 1_o tim._n 1.5_o heb._n 9.14_o faith_n be_v the_o great_a work_n and_o mother_n duty_n joh._n 6.29_o gal._n 5.6_o isa_n 55.2_o therefore_o while_o you_o believe_v not_o you_o dishonour_v christ_n and_o his_o death_n gal._n 2.21_o ch_n 5.2_o 3_o 4._o therefore_o come_v bold_o though_o a_o great_a sinner_n act._n 10.43_o and_o seek_v righteousness_n in_o christ_n with_o holiness_n rom._n 8.1_o q._n but_o how_o shall_v i_o get_v faith_n a._n faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n eph._n 2.8_o and_o by_o the_o gospel_n rom._n 1.15_o &_o 10_o 17._o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v the_o gospel_n preach_v and_o that_o come_v in_o work_v of_o faith_n not_o in_o word_n only_o but_o in_o power_n 1_o thes_n 1.5_o beyond_o what_o can_v be_v do_v by_o natural_a or_o humane_a attainment_n joh._n 6.63_o therefore_o if_o thou_o have_v no_o beginning_n in_o thou_o of_o it_o thy_o only_a way_n be_v to_o attend_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o meditate_v
the_o gospel-mystery_n of_o sanctification_n open_v in_o sundry_a practical_a direction_n suit_v especial_o to_o the_o case_n of_o those_o who_o labour_n under_o the_o guilt_n and_o power_n of_o indwelling_a sin_n to_o which_o be_v add_v a_o sermon_n of_o justification_n 1_o cor._n 1.27_o 28_o 29_o 30_o 31._o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a and_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v mighty_a and_o base_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thing_n which_o be_v despise_v have_v god_n choose_v yea_o and_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v to_o nought_o thing_n that_o be_v that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n but_o of_o he_o be_v you_o in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o of_o god_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n that_o according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v he_o that_o glori_v let_v he_o glory_n in_o the_o lord_n by_o mr._n walter_n marshal_z late_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n london_n print_v for_o t._n parkhurst_n at_o the_o bible_n and_o three_o crown_n in_o cheapside_n near_o mercer_n chapel_n 1692._o the_o preface_n reader_n mr._n walter_n marshal_n composer_n of_o these_o direction_n how_o to_o attain_v to_o that_o practice_n and_o manner_n of_o life_n which_o we_o call_v holiness_n righteousness_n or_o godliness_n be_v educate_v in_o new_a college_n in_o oxford_n and_o be_v a_o fellow_n of_o the_o say_a college_n and_o afterward_o he_o be_v choose_v a_o fellow_n of_o the_o college_n at_o winchester_n but_o be_v put_v under_o the_o bartholomew_n bushel_n with_o nigh_o two_o thousand_o more_o light_n a_o sin_n not_o yet_o repent_v of_o who_o illumination_n make_v the_o land_n a_o goshen_n he_o be_v esteem_v a_o presbyterian_a and_o be_v call_v to_o be_v pastor_n to_o a_o people_n at_o gospert_a in_o hampshire_n where_o he_o shine_v though_o he_o have_v not_o the_o public_a oil_n the_o substance_n of_o these_o meditation_n be_v there_o spin_v out_o of_o his_o own_o experience_n he_o have_v be_v much_o exercise_v with_o trouble_a thought_n and_o that_o for_o many_o year_n and_o have_v by_o many_o mortify_a method_n seek_v peace_n of_o conscience_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o his_o trouble_n still_o increase_v whereupon_o he_o consult_v other_o particular_o mr._n baxter_n who_o write_n he_o have_v be_v much_o conversant_a with_o who_o thereupon_o tell_v mr._n marshal_n he_o take_v they_o too_o legal_o he_o afterward_o consult_v a_o eminent_a divine_a give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o the_o state_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o particularise_v his_o sin_n that_o lay_v heavy_a on_o his_o conscience_n who_o in_o his_o reply_n tell_v he_o he_o have_v forget_v to_o mention_v the_o great_a sin_n of_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n in_o not_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o sanctify_v his_o nature_n hereupon_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o the_o study_v and_o preach_v of_o christ_n and_o attain_v to_o eminent_a holiness_n great_a peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n mr._n marshal_n die_a word_n be_v these_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n have_v but_o just_a before_o say_v to_o those_o about_o he_o that_o he_o now_o die_v in_o the_o full_a persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o in_o the_o comfort_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v preach_v the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n some_o time_n since_o he_o be_v translate_v by_o death_n elijah-like_a drop_v these_o sheet_n as_o his_o mantle_n for_o succeed_a elisha_n to_o go_v forth_o with_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n and_o comfort_n of_o droop_a soul_n these_o paper_n be_v the_o profound_a experience_n of_o a_o studious_a holy_a soul_n learned_a of_o the_o father_n come_v from_o his_o very_a heart_n and_o smell_v of_o no_o party_n or_o design_n but_o for_o holiness_n and_o happiness_n yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v they_o will_v scarce_o go_v down_o with_o the_o heady_a notionalist_n of_o this_o age_n who_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o reuben_n waver_v with_o every_o wind_n of_o modish_a doctrine_n but_o in_o judah_n it_o will_v be_v praise_v and_o we_o may_v hope_v that_o many_o shrub_n and_o cedar_n hereby_o may_v advance_v in_o knowledge_n and_o comfort_n but_o not_o to_o detain_v thou_o long_o read_v over_o all_o these_o direction_n that_o you_o may_v full_o understand_v the_o author_n or_o read_v none_o if_o you_o do_v it_o with_o the_o serious_a humble_a spirit_n in_o which_o they_o be_v write_v it_o may_v be_v hope_v the_o matter_n be_v so_o weighty_a and_o from_o so_o able_a a_o hand_n through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o will_v sink_v into_o thy_o conscience_n and_o make_v thou_o a_o solid_a christian_a full_a of_o faith_n holiness_n and_o consolation_n n._n n._n the_o author_n of_o these_o direction_n be_v well_o know_v to_o i_o and_o be_v with_o i_o in_o my_o house_n a_o month_n together_o above_o twenty_o year_n past_a and_o i_o esteem_v he_o a_o person_n deserve_v the_o character_n which_o this_o preface_n give_v he_o t._n woodcock_n the_o gospel_n mystery_n of_o sanctification_n direction_n i._n that_o we_o may_v acceptable_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o holiness_n and_o righteonsness_n require_v in_o the_o law_n our_o first_o work_n be_v to_o learn_v the_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o so_o great_a a_o end_n explication_n this_o direction_n may_v serve_v instead_o of_o a_o preface_n to_o prepare_v the_o understanding_n and_o attention_n of_o the_o reader_n for_o those_o that_o follow_v and_o first_o it_o acquaint_v you_o with_o the_o great_a end_n for_o which_o all_o those_o mean_n be_v design_v that_o be_v the_o principal_a subject_n to_o be_v here_o treat_v of_o the_o scope_n of_o all_o be_v to_o teach_v you_o how_o you_o may_v attain_v to_o that_o practice_n and_o manner_n of_o life_n which_o we_o call_v holiness_n righteousness_n or_o godliness_n obedience_n true_a religion_n and_o which_o god_n require_v of_o we_o in_o the_o law_n particular_o in_o the_o moral_a law_n 20._o exod._n 20._o sum_v up_o in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o more_o brief_o in_o those_o two_o great_a commandment_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n mat._n 22.37_o 39_o and_o more_o large_o explain_v throughout_o the_o holy_a scripture_n my_o work_n be_v to_o show_v how_o the_o duty_n of_o this_o law_n may_v be_v do_v when_o they_o be_v know_v therefore_o expect_v not_o that_o i_o shall_v delay_v my_o intent_n to_o help_v you_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o by_o any_o large_a exposition_n of_o they_o which_o be_v a_o work_n already_o perform_v in_o several_a catechism_n and_o commentary_n yet_o that_o you_o may_v not_o miss_v the_o mark_n for_o want_v of_o discern_v of_o it_o take_v notice_n in_o few_o word_n that_o the_o holiness_n which_o i_o will_v bring_v you_o to_o be_v spiritual_a rom._n 7.14_o it_o consist_v not_o only_o in_o external_a work_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n but_o in_o the_o holy_a thought_n imagination_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o chief_o in_o love_n from_o whence_o all_o other_o good_a work_n must_v flow_v or_o else_o they_o be_v not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n not_o only_o in_o refrain_v the_o execution_n of_o sinful_a lust_n but_o in_o lust_a and_o delight_v to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o in_o a_o cheerful_a obedience_n to_o god_n without_o repine_v fret_a grudge_a at_o any_o duty_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o grievous_a yoke_n and_o burden_n to_o you_o take_v notice_n further_o that_o the_o law_n which_o be_v your_o mark_n be_v exceed_v broad_a psal_n 119.96_o and_o yet_o not_o the_o more_o easy_a to_o be_v hit_v because_o you_o must_v aim_v to_o hit_v it_o in_o every_o duty_n of_o it_o with_o a_o performance_n of_o equal_a breadth_n or_o else_o you_o can_v hit_v it_o all_o isai_n 2.10_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o at_o all_o love_a with_o that_o love_n that_o be_v due_a to_o he_o as_o lord_n of_o all_o if_o he_o be_v not_o love_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n spirit_n and_o may_v we_o be_v to_o love_v every_o thing_n in_o he_o his_o justice_n holiness_n sovereign_a authority_n all-seeing_a eye_n and_o all_o his_o decree_n command_n judgement_n and_o all_o his_o do_n we_o be_v to_o love_v he_o not_o only_o better_a than_o other_o thing_n but_o single_o as_o only_o good_a the_o fountain_n of_o all_o goodness_n and_o to_o reject_v all_o fleshly_a and_o worldly_a enjoyment_n even_o our_o own_o life_n as_o if_o we_o hate_v they_o when_o they_o stand_v in_o competition_n with_o our_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o
or_o our_o duty_n towards_o he_o we_o must_v love_v he_o as_o to_o yield_v ourselves_o whole_o up_o to_o his_o constant_a service_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o his_o disposal_n of_o we_o as_o our_o absolute_a lord_n whether_o it_o be_v for_o prosperity_n or_o adversity_n life_n or_o death_n and_o for_o his_o sake_n we_o be_v to_o love_v our_o neighbour_n even_o all_o man_n whether_o they_o be_v friend_n or_o foe_n to_o we_o and_o so_o do_v to_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o concern_v their_o honour_n life_n chastity_n worldly_a wealth_n credit_n and_o content_a whatever_o we_o will_v that_o man_n shall_v do_v to_o we_o in_o the_o like_a condition_n mat._n 7.12_o this_o spiritual_a universal_a obedience_n be_v the_o great_a end_n to_o the_o attainment_n whereof_o i_o be_o direct_v you_o and_o that_o you_o may_v not_o reject_v my_o enterprise_n as_o impossible_a observe_v that_o the_o most_o i_o promise_v be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o acceptable_a performance_n of_o these_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n such_o as_o our_o gracious_a merciful_a god_n will_v certain_o delight_v in_o and_o be_v please_v with_o during_o our_o state_n of_o imperfection_n in_o this_o world_n and_o such_o as_o will_v end_v in_o perfection_n of_o holiness_n and_o all_o happiness_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v before_o i_o proceed_v further_o stay_v your_o thought_n a_o while_n in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o great_a dignity_n and_o excellency_n of_o these_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n that_o you_o may_v aim_v at_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o as_o your_o end_n with_o so_o high_a a_o esteem_n as_o may_v cast_v a_o amiable_a lustre_n upon_o the_o ensue_a discovery_n of_o the_o mean_n the_o principal_a duty_n of_o love_n to_o god_n above_o all_o and_o to_o each_o other_o for_o his_o sake_n from_o whence_o all_o the_o other_o duty_n flow_v be_v so_o excellent_a that_o i_o can_v imagine_v any_o more_o noble_a work_n for_o the_o holy_a angel_n in_o their_o glorious_a sphere_n they_o be_v the_o chief_a work_n for_o which_o we_o be_v at_o first_o frame_v by_o the_o image_n of_o god_n engrave_v upon_o man_n in_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o for_o which_o that_o beautiful_a image_n be_v renew_v upon_o we_o in_o our_o new_a creation_n and_o sanctification_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o shall_v be_v perfect_v in_o our_o glorification_n they_o be_v work_n which_o depend_v not_o mere_o on_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o be_v command_v or_o forbid_v or_o leave_v indifferent_a or_o change_v or_o abolish_v at_o his_o pleasure_n as_o other_o work_n that_o belong_v either_o to_o the_o judicial_a or_o ceremonial_a law_n or_o to_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n prescribe_v by_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n holy_a just_a and_o good_a rom._n 7.12_o and_o meet_v for_o we_o to_o perform_v because_o of_o our_o natural_a relation_n to_o our_o creator_n and_o fellow-creature_n so_o that_o they_o have_v a_o inseparable_a dependence_n upon_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o a_o indispensable_a establishment_n thereby_o they_o be_v work_v sufficient_a to_o render_v the_o performer_n holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n by_o the_o fruit_n which_o they_o bring_v forth_o if_o no_o other_o duty_n have_v ever_o be_v command_v and_o by_o which_o the_o performance_n of_o all_o other_o duty_n be_v sufficient_o establish_v as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v command_v and_o without_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o holiness_n of_o heart_n and_o life_n imagine_v and_o to_o which_o it_o be_v one_o great_a honour_n of_o moysaicall_a and_o be_v now_o of_o evangelical_n ordinance_n to_o be_v subservient_fw-fr for_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o as_o mean_n which_o shall_v cease_v when_o their_o end_n this_o never-failing_a charity_n be_v perfect_o attain_v 1_o cor._n 13._o they_o be_v duty_n which_o we_o be_v natural_o oblige_v to_o by_o that_o reason_n and_o understanding_n which_o god_n give_v to_o man_n at_o his_o first_o creation_n to_o discern_v what_o be_v just_a and_o meet_v for_o he_o to_o do_v and_o to_o which_o even_a heathen_n be_v still_o oblige_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n without_o any_o write_a law_n or_o supernatural_a revelation_n rom._n 2.14.15_o therefore_o they_o be_v call_v natural_a religion_n and_o the_o law_n that_o require_v they_o be_v call_v the_o natural_a law_n and_o also_o the_o moral_a law_n because_o the_o manner_n of_o all_o man_n infidel_n as_o well_o as_o christian_n aught_o to_o be_v conform_v to_o it_o and_o if_o they_o have_v be_v full_o conformable_a they_o will_v not_o have_v come_v short_a of_o eternal_a happiness_n mat._n 5.19_o luke_n 10_o 27_o 28._o under_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n for_o the_o violation_n of_o it_o this_o be_v the_o true_a morality_n which_o god_n approve_v of_o consist_v in_o conformity_n of_o all_o our_o action_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o if_o those_o that_o in_o these_o day_n contend_v so_o high_o for_o morality_n do_v understand_v no_o other_o than_o this_o i_o dare_v join_v with_o they_o in_o assert_v moralist_n the_o great_a saint_n be_v the_o great_a moralist_n that_o the_o best_a moral_o honest_a man_n be_v the_o great_a saint_n and_o that_o morality_n be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o test_n of_o all_o other_o part_n without_o which_o faith_n be_v dead_a and_o all_o other_o religious_a performance_n be_v a_o vain_a show_n and_o mere_a hypocrisy_n for_o the_o faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n have_v testify_v concern_v the_o two_o great_a moral_a commandment_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n that_o there_o be_v none_o other_o commandment_n great_a than_o these_o and_o that_o on_o they_o hang_v all_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n mar._n 12.31_o mat._n 22.40_o the_o second_o thing_n contain_v in_o this_o introductory_n direction_n be_v the_o necessity_n of_o learning_n the_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a mean_n whereby_o this_o great_a and_o excellent_a end_n may_v be_v accomplish_v and_o of_o make_v this_o the_o first_o work_n to_o be_v do_v before_o we_o can_v expect_v success_n in_o any_o attempt_n for_o the_o attainment_n of_o it_o this_o be_v a_o advertisement_n very_o needful_a because_o many_o be_v apt_a to_o skip_v over_o the_o lesson_n concern_v the_o mean_n that_o will_v fill_v up_o this_o whole_a treatise_n as_o superfluous_a and_o useless_a when_o once_o they_o know_v the_o nature_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n they_o account_v nothing_o want_v but_o diligent_a performance_n and_o they_o rush_v blind_o upon_o immediate_a practice_n make_v more_o haste_n than_o good_a speed_n they_o be_v quick_a in_o promise_v exod._n 19.8_o all_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v we_o will_v do_v without_o sit_v down_o and_o count_v the_o cost_n they_o look_v upon_o holiness_n as_o only_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o end_n eternal_a salvation_n not_o as_o a_o end_n itself_o require_v any_o great_a mean_n to_o the_o attain_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o the_o enquiry_n of_o most_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o have_v a_o sense_n of_o religion_n be_v what_o good_a thing_n shall_v i_o do_v that_o i_o may_v have_v eternal_a life_n mat._n 19.16_o not_o how_o shall_v i_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a yea_o many_o that_o be_v account_v powerful_a preacher_n spend_v all_o their_o zeal_n in_o the_o earnest_n press_v the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o the_o law_n without_o any_o discovery_n of_o the_o effectual_a mean_n of_o performance_n as_o if_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n be_v like_o those_o servile_a employment_n that_o need_v no_o skill_n and_o artifice_v at_o all_o but_o industry_n and_o activity_n that_o you_o may_v not_o stumble_v at_o the_o threshold_n of_o a_o religious_a life_n by_o this_o common_a oversight_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v you_o sensible_a that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o you_o to_o know_v the_o matter_n and_o reason_n of_o your_o duty_n but_o that_o you_o be_v also_o to_o learn_v the_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a mean_n of_o performance_n before_o you_o can_v successful_o apply_v yourselves_o to_o immediate_a practice_n and_o for_o this_o end_n i_o shall_v lay_v before_o you_o the_o consideration_n follow_v 1._o we_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n void_a of_o all_o strength_n and_o ability_n to_o perform_v acceptable_o that_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n which_o the_o law_n require_v and_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n and_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o father_n adam_n as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v rom._n 5.12_o 15_o 18_o 19_o eph._n 2._o v._n 1_o 2_o 3._o rom._n 8.7_o 8._o this_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n which_o protestant_n general_o profess_v be_v a_o firm_a basis_n and_o groundwork_n to_o the_o assertion_n now_o to_o be_v prove_v
and_o to_o many_o other_o assertion_n in_o this_o whole_a discourse_n if_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a we_o can_v rational_o encourage_v ourselves_o to_o attempt_v a_o holy_a practice_n until_o we_o be_v acquaint_v with_o some_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a mean_n to_o enable_v we_o for_o it_o while_o man_n continue_v upright_o in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v at_o first_o create_v eccles_n 7.29_o gen._n 1.27_o he_o can_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n sincere_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o know_v it_o but_o when_o he_o be_v fall_v he_o be_v quick_o afraid_a because_o of_o his_o nakedness_n but_o can_v not_o help_v it_o at_o all_o until_o god_n discover_v to_o he_o the_o mean_n of_o restoration_n gen._n 3.10_o say_v to_o a_o strong_a healthy_a servant_n go_v and_o he_o go_v come_v and_o he_o come_v do_v this_o and_o he_o do_v it_o but_o a_o bedridden_a servant_n must_v know_v first_o how_o he_o may_v be_v enable_v no_o doubt_v the_o fall_v angel_n know_v the_o necessity_n of_o holiness_n and_o tremble_v at_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o they_o know_v of_o no_o mean_n for_o they_o to_o attain_v to_o holiness_n effectual_o and_o so_o continue_v still_o in_o their_o wickedness_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o samson_n to_o say_v i_o will_v go_v out_o as_o at_o other_o time_n before_o and_o shake_v myself_o when_o he_o have_v sin_v away_o his_o strength_n judge_n 16.20_o man_n show_v themselves_o strange_o forgetful_a or_o hypocritical_a in_o profess_v original_a sin_n in_o their_o prayer_n catechism_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o urge_v upon_o themselves_o and_o other_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o law_n without_o the_o consideration_n of_o any_o strengthen_n enliven_a mean_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o want_n of_o ability_n but_o only_o of_o activity_n 2_o those_o that_o doubt_v of_o or_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n may_v all_o of_o they_o know_v concern_v themselves_o if_o their_o conscience_n be_v not_o blind_a that_o the_o exact_a justice_n of_o god_n be_v against_o they_o and_o they_o be_v under_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n and_o sentence_n of_o death_n for_o their_o actual_a sin_n if_o god_n shall_v enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o they_o rom._n 1.32_o &_o 2.2_o &_o 3.9_o gal._n 3.10_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n that_o know_v this_o to_o be_v his_o case_n and_o have_v not_o learn_v any_o mean_n of_o get_v out_o of_o it_o to_o practice_v the_o law_n immediate_o to_o love_n god_n and_o every_o thing_n in_o he_o his_o justice_n holiness_n power_n as_o well_o as_o his_o mercy_n and_o to_o yield_v himself_o willing_o to_o the_o disposal_n of_o god_n though_o god_n shall_v inflict_v sudden_a death_n upon_o he_o be_v there_o no_o skill_n or_o artifice_v at_o all_o require_v in_o this_o case_n to_o encourage_v the_o faint_a soul_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o universal_a obedience_n 3_o though_o heathen_n may_v know_v much_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n by_o the_o common_a light_n of_o natural_a reason_n and_o understanding_n rom._n 2.14_o yet_o the_o effectual_a mean_n of_o performance_n can_v be_v discover_v by_o that_o light_n and_o therefore_o be_v whole_o to_o be_v learn_v by_o the_o teach_n of_o supernatural_a revelalation_n for_o what_o be_v our_o natural_a light_n but_o some_o spark_n and_o glimmering_n of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o adam_n before_o the_o fall_n and_o even_o then_o in_o its_o bright_a meridian_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o direct_v adam_n how_o to_o recover_v ability_n to_o walk_v holy_o if_o once_o he_o shall_v lose_v it_o by_o sin_n nor_o to_o assure_v he_o beforehand_o that_o god_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o he_o any_o mean_n of_o recovery_n god_n have_v set_v nothing_o but_o death_n before_o his_o eye_n in_o case_n of_o transgression_n gen._n 2.17_o and_o therefore_o he_o hide_v himself_o from_o god_n when_o the_o shame_n of_o his_o nakedness_n appear_v as_o expect_v no_o favour_n from_o he_o we_o be_v like_o sheep_n go_v astray_o and_o know_v not_o which_o way_n to_o return_v until_o we_o hear_v the_o shepherd_n voice_n can_v these_o dry_a bone_n live_v to_o god_n in_o holiness_n o_o lord_n thou_o know_v and_o we_o can_v know_v it_o except_o we_o learn_v it_o of_o thou_o 4_o sanctification_n whereby_o our_o heart_n and_o life_n be_v conform_v to_o the_o law_n be_v a_o grace_n of_o god_n communicate_v to_o we_o by_o mean_n as_o well_o as_o justification_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o teach_v and_o learn_v something_o that_o we_o can_v see_v without_o the_o word_n act_v 26.17_o 18._o there_o be_v several_a thing_n pertain_v to_o life_n and_o godliness_n that_o be_v give_v through_o knowledge_n 2_o pet._n 1.3_o there_o be_v a_o form_n of_o doctrine_n make_v use_v of_o by_o god_n to_o make_v people_n free_a from_o sin_n and_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n rom._n 6._o v._n 17_o 18._o and_o there_o be_v several_a piece_n of_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o put_v on_o that_o we_o may_v stand_v against_o sin_n and_o satan_n in_o the_o evil_a day_n eph._n 6.13_o shall_v we_o slight_v and_o overlook_v the_o way_n of_o sanctification_n when_o the_o learning_n the_o way_n of_o justification_n have_v be_v count_v worth_a so_o many_o elaborate_a treatise_n 5_o god_n have_v give_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o his_o inspiration_n plentiful_a instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o we_o may_v be_v thorough_o furnish_v for_o every_o good_a work_n 2_o tim._n 3.16_o 17._o especial_o since_o the_o day_n spring_n from_o a_o high_a have_v visit_v we_o by_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o guide_v our_o foot_n in_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n luke_n 1.78_o 79._o if_o god_n condescend_v to_o we_o very_o low_a to_o teach_v we_o this_o way_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o christ_n himself_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v great_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o sit_v down_o at_o his_o foot_n and_o learn_v it_o 6_o the_o way_n of_o attain_v to_o godliness_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v know_v without_o learning_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o when_o it_o be_v here_o plain_o reveal_v we_o can_v learn_v it_o so_o easy_o as_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v know_v in_o part_n by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o therefore_o more_o easy_o assent_v unto_o it_o be_v the_o way_n whereby_o the_o dead_a be_v bring_v to_o live_v unto_o god_n and_o therefore_o doubtless_o it_o be_v far_o above_o all_o the_o thought_n and_o conjecture_n of_o human_a wisdom_n it_o be_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n wherein_o god_n will_v destroy_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o bring_v to_o nothing_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o prudent_a by_o discover_v thing_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o neither_o can_v he_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v 1_o cor._n 1.19.21_o &_o 2.14_o without_o controversy_n great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n 1_o tim._n 3.16_o the_o learning_n of_o it_o require_v double_a work_n because_o we_o must_v unlearn_v many_o of_o our_o former_a deep_o root_v notion_n and_o become_v fool_n that_o we_o may_v be_v wise_a we_o must_v pray_v earnest_o to_o the_o lord_n to_o teach_v we_o as_o well_o as_o search_v the_o scripture_n that_o we_o may_v get_v this_o knowledge_n o_o that_o my_o way_n be_v direct_v to_o keep_v thy_o statute_n teach_v i_o o_o lord_n the_o way_n of_o thy_o statute_n and_o i_o shall_v keep_v it_o to_o the_o end_n psal_n 119.5.33_o teach_v i_o to_o do_v thy_o will_n psal_n 14.3_o 10._o the_o lord_n direct_v your_o heart_n unto_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 2_o thess_n 3.5_o sure_o these_o saint_n do_v not_o so_o much_o want_v teach_v and_o direction_n concern_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n to_o be_v do_v as_o concern_v the_o way_n and_o means_n whereby_o they_o may_v do_v they_o 7_o the_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o these_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a mean_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o necessity_n for_o our_o establishment_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o avoid_v error_n contrary_a thereunto_o for_o we_o can_v rational_o doubt_v that_o the_o moral_a duty_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o true_a religion_n so_o that_o it_o can_v subsist_v without_o they_o and_o from_o this_o principle_n we_o may_v firm_o conclude_v that_o nothing_o repugnant_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o holy_a duty_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n deliver_v to_o we_o by_o the_o most_o holy_a god_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v true_o necessary_a powerful_a and_o effectual_a to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o they_o aught_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o
proceed_v from_o god_n because_o it_o have_v the_o image_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n engrave_v upon_o it_o this_o be_v a_o sure_a test_n and_o touchstone_n which_o those_o that_o be_v serious_o religious_a will_v use_v to_o try_v spirit_n and_o their_o doctrine_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o and_o they_o can_v rational_o approve_v any_o doctrine_n as_o religious_a that_o be_v not_o according_a to_o godliness_n 1_o tim._n 6.3_o by_o this_o touchstone_n christ_n prove_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n because_o therein_o he_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n john_n 7.17_o 18._o and_o he_o teach_v we_o to_o know_v false_a prophet_n by_o their_o fruit_n mat._n 7._o v._n 15_o 16._o wherein_o the_o fruit_n which_o their_o doctrine_n tend_v unto_o be_v especial_o to_o be_v consider_v hence_o it_o appear_v that_o until_o we_o know_v what_o be_v the_o effectual_a mean_n of_o holiness_n and_o what_o not_o we_o want_v a_o necessary_a touchstone_n of_o divine_a truth_n and_o may_v be_v easy_o deceive_v by_o false_a doctrine_n or_o bring_v to_o live_v in_o mere_a suspense_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o religion_n like_o the_o seeker_n and_o if_o you_o mistake_v those_o mean_n to_o be_v effectual_a that_o be_v not_o and_o those_o that_o be_v effectual_a to_o be_v weak_a or_o of_o a_o contrary_a effect_n your_o error_n in_o this_o will_v be_v a_o false_a touchstone_n to_o try_v other_o doctrine_n whereby_o you_o will_v ready_o approve_v of_o error_n and_o refuse_v the_o truth_n which_o have_v be_v a_o pernicious_a occasion_n of_o many_o error_n in_o religion_n in_o late_a day_n get_v but_o a_o true_a touchstone_n by_o learn_v this_o lesson_n and_o you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o try_v the_o various_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n papist_n arminian_o socinian_o antinomian_o quaker_n and_o to_o discover_v the_o truth_n and_o cleave_v to_o it_o with_o much_o satisfaction_n to_o your_o judgement_n among_o all_o the_o jangle_n and_o controversy_n of_o these_o time_n hereby_o you_o may_v discover_v whether_o the_o protestant_a religion_n establish_v among_o we_o have_v in_o it_o any_o sinew_n of_o antinomianism_n whether_o it_o be_v guilty_a of_o any_o insufferable_a defect_n in_o practical_a principle_n and_o deserve_v to_o be_v alter_v and_o turn_v almost_o upside_o down_o with_o new_a doctrine_n and_o method_n as_o some_o learned_a man_n in_o late_a time_n have_v judge_v by_o their_o touchstone_n 8_o it_o be_v also_o of_o great_a importance_n and_o necessity_n for_o our_o establishment_n in_o holy_a practice_n for_o we_o can_v apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n with_o hope_n of_o success_n except_o we_o have_v some_o faith_n concern_v the_o divine_a assistance_n which_o we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o expect_v if_o we_o use_v not_o such_o mean_n as_o god_n have_v appoint_v to_o work_v by_o god_n meet_v they_o that_o remember_v he_o in_o his_o own_o way_n isai_n 64.5_o and_o make_v a_o breach_n upon_o they_o that_o seek_v he_o not_o after_o the_o due_a order_n 1_o chron._n 15.13_o he_o have_v choose_v and_o ordain_v such_o mean_n of_o sanctification_n and_o salvation_n as_o be_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o those_o only_o he_o bless_v to_o we_o and_o he_o crow_v no_o man_n that_o strive_v except_o he_o strive_v lawful_o 2_o tim._n 2.5_o experience_n show_v plentiful_o both_o of_o heathen_n and_o christian_n how_o pernicious_a ignorance_n or_o mistake_v of_o these_o effectual_a mean_n be_v to_o a_o holy_a practice_n the_o heathen_n general_o fall_v short_a of_o a_o acceptable_a performance_n of_o those_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n which_o they_o know_v because_o of_o their_o ignorance_n in_o this_o point_n many_o christian_n content_v themselves_o with_o external_a performance_n because_o they_o never_o know_v how_o they_o may_v attain_v to_o spiritual_a service_n and_o many_o reject_v the_o way_n of_o holiness_n as_o austere_a and_o unpleasant_a because_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o cut_v off_o a_o right-hand_a or_o pluck_v out_o a_o right-eye_n without_o intolerable_a pain_n whereas_o they_o will_v find_v the_o way_n of_o wisdom_n if_o they_o know_v they_o to_o be_v way_n of_o pleasantness_n and_o all_o her_o path_n to_o be_v peace_n prov._n 3.17_o this_o occasion_v the_o put_v off_o repentance_n from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o a_o uncouth_a thing_n many_o other_o set_v upon_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n with_o a_o fervent_a zeal_n and_o run_v very_o fast_o but_o tread_v not_o a_o step_n in_o the_o right_a way_n and_o find_v themselves_o frequent_o disappoint_v and_o overcome_v by_o their_o lust_n they_o at_o last_o give_v over_o the_o work_n and_o turn_v to_o wallow_v again_o in_o the_o mire_n which_o have_v occasion_v several_a treatise_n to_o show_v how_o far_o a_o reprobate_n may_v go_v in_o the_o way_n of_o religion_n whereby_o many_o weak_a saint_n be_v discourage_v account_v that_o these_o reprobate_n have_v go_v further_a than_o themselves_o whereas_o most_o of_o they_o never_o know_v the_o right_a way_n nor_o tread_v one_o step_n aright_o in_o it_o for_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o mat._n 7.14_o some_o of_o these_o ignorant_a zealot_n do_v inhuman_o macerate_v their_o body_n with_o fast_v and_o other_o austerity_n to_o kill_v their_o lust_n and_o when_o they_o see_v their_o lust_n be_v still_o to_o hard_o for_o they_o they_o fall_v into_o despair_n and_o be_v drive_v by_o horror_n of_o conscience_n to_o make_v away_o themselves_o wicked_o to_o the_o scandal_n of_o religion_n peradventure_o god_n may_v bless_v my_o discovery_n of_o the_o powerful_a mean_n of_o holiness_n so_o far_o as_o to_o save_v some_o one_o or_o other_o from_o kill_v themselves_o and_o such_o a_o fruit_n as_o this_o will_v countervail_v my_o labour_n though_o i_o hope_v god_n will_v enlarge_v the_o heart_n of_o many_o by_o it_o to_o run_v with_o great_a cheerfulness_n joy_n and_o thanksgiving_n in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o commandment_n direct_v ii_o several_a endowment_n and_o qualification_n be_v necessary_a to_o enable_v we_o for_o the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o the_o law_n particular_o we_o must_v have_v a_o inclination_n and_o propensity_n of_o our_o heart_n thereunto_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o of_o our_o future_a enjoyment_n of_o the_o everlasting_a heavenly_a happiness_n and_o of_o sufficient_a strength_n both_o to_o will_v and_o perform_v all_o duty_n acceptable_o until_o we_o come_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o happiness_n explication_n those_o mean_n that_o be_v next_o to_o the_o attainment_n of_o the_o great_a end_n aim_v at_o be_v first_o to_o be_v discover_v that_o we_o may_v learn_v how_o to_o get_v they_o by_o other_o mean_v express_v in_o the_o follow_a direction_n therefore_o i_o have_v name_v here_o several_a qualification_n and_o endowment_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v up_o that_o holy_a frame_n and_o state_n of_o the_o soul_n whereby_o it_o be_v furnish_v and_o enable_v to_o practise_v the_o law_n immediate_o and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o beginning_n but_o in_o the_o continuation_n of_o that_o practice_n and_o therefore_o note_v diligent_o that_o these_o endowment_n must_v continue_v in_o we_o during_o the_o present_a life_n or_o else_o our_o ability_n for_o a_o holy_a life_n will_v be_v lose_v and_o they_o must_v be_v before_o practice_n not_o in_o any_o distance_n of_o time_n but_o only_o as_o the_o cause_n be_v before_o the_o effect_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o i_o have_v name_v particular_o all_o such_o necessary_a qualification_n but_o thus_o much_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o he_o that_o gain_v these_o may_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n gain_v any_o other_o that_o shall_v be_v rank_v with_o they_o and_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n worthy_a of_o our_o serious_a consideration_n for_o few_o understand_v that_o any_o special_a endowment_n be_v require_v to_o furnish_v we_o for_o a_o holy_a practice_n more_o than_o for_o other_o voluntary_a action_n the_o first_o adam_n have_v excellent_a endowment_n bestow_v upon_o he_o for_o a_o holy_a practice_n when_o he_o be_v first_o create_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o the_o second_o adam_n have_v endowment_n more_o excellent_a to_o enable_v he_o for_o a_o hard_a task_n of_o obedience_n and_o see_v obedience_n be_v grow_v more_o difficult_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o opposition_n and_o temptation_n that_o it_o meet_v with_o since_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n we_o that_o be_v to_o be_v imitator_n of_o christ_n have_v need_n have_v very_o choice_a endowment_n as_o christ_n have_v at_o least_o as_o good_a or_o something_o better_a than_o adam_n have_v at_o first_o as_o our_o work_n be_v hard_a than_o he_o what_o king_n go_v to_o make_v war_n against_o another_o king_n sit_v not_o down_o first_o and_o consult_v whether_o he_o be_v able_a with_o ten_o thousand_o to_o
of_o it_o the_o second_o adam_n also_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v bear_v a_o holy_a thing_n luke_n 1_o 35._o with_o a_o holy_a disposition_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o propensity_n to_o goodness_n and_o can_v we_o reasonable_o hope_v to_o arise_v to_o the_o life_n of_o holiness_n from_o which_o the_o first_o adam_n fall_v or_o to_o be_v imitator_n of_o christ_n since_o duty_n be_v make_v so_o difficult_a by_o the_o fall_n if_o we_o be_v not_o renew_v in_o a_o measure_n according_a to_o the_o same_o image_n of_o god_n and_o enable_v with_o such_o a_o propensity_n and_o inclination_n 3_o original_a corruption_n whereby_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o god_n and_o godliness_n from_o the_o birth_n and_o make_v willing_a slave_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o all_o actual_a sin_n until_o the_o son_n of_o god_n make_v we_o free_a confi_v in_o a_o propensity_n and_o inclination_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o sin_n and_o averseness_n to_o holiness_n without_o this_o propensity_n to_o sin_n what_o can_v that_o law_n of_o sin_n in_o our_o member_n be_v that_o war_v against_o the_o law_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o lead_v we_o captive_a to_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n rom._n 7.23_o what_o be_v that_o poison_n in_o we_o for_o which_o man_n may_v be_v call_v serpent_n viper_n what_o be_v that_o spirit_n of_o whoredom_n in_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o they_o will_v not_o frame_v their_o do_n to_o turn_v to_o god_n hos_fw-la 5.4_o how_o be_v the_o tree_n first_o corrupt_v and_o then_o its_o fruit_n corrupt_v matth._n 12.33_o how_o can_v man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v abominable_a and_o filthy_a that_o drink_v iniquity_n like_o water_n job_n 15.16_o how_o shall_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v continual_a enmity_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.7_o i_o know_v there_o be_v also_o a_o blindness_n of_o understanding_n and_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o original_a corruption_n which_o conduce_v to_o this_o evil_a propensity_n of_o the_o will_n but_o yet_o this_o propensity_n itself_o be_v the_o great_a evil_n the_o indwelling_a sin_n which_o produce_v all_o actual_a sin_n and_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v remove_v or_o restrain_v by_o restore_v that_o contrary_a inclination_n wherein_o the_o image_n of_o god_n confisted_a or_o else_o we_o shall_v be_v backward_o and_o reprobate_a to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o whatever_o freedom_n the_o will_n have_v shall_v be_v employ_v only_o in_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n 4_o god_n restore_v his_o people_n to_o holiness_n by_o give_v to_o they_o a_o new_a heart_n a_o new_a spirit_n and_o take_v away_o the_o heart_n of_o stone_n out_o of_o their_o flesh_n and_o give_v they_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n ezek._n 36.26_o 27._o and_o he_o circumcise_v their_o heart_n to_o love_v he_o with_o their_o whole_a heart_n and_o soul_n and_o he_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v transform_v in_o the_o renew_n of_o our_o mind_n that_o we_o may_v prove_v what_o be_v his_o acceptable_a will_n rom._n 12.2_o and_o david_n pray_v for_o the_o same_o end_n that_o god_n will_v create_v in_o he_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o renew_v a_o right_a spirit_n within_o he_o psal_n 51.10_o if_o any_o one_o can_v judge_v that_o this_o new_a clean_o circumcise_a heart_n this_o heart_n of_o flesh_n this_o new_a right_a spirit_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v no_o actual_a inclination_n and_o propensity_n to_o good_a but_o only_o a_o power_n to_o choose_v good_a or_o evil_n undeserved_o call_v freewill_n with_o a_o present_a inclination_n to_o evil_n or_o a_o indifference_n of_o propensity_n to_o both_o contrary_n it_o will_v not_o be_v worth_a my_o labour_n to_o convince_v such_o a_o judgement_n only_o let_v he_o consider_v whether_o david_n can_v account_v such_o a_o heart_n to_o be_v clean_a and_o right_a when_o he_o pray_v psal_n 119.36_o incline_v my_o heart_n to_o thy_o testimony_n and_o not_o to_o covetousness_n the_o second_o endowment_n necessary_a to_o enable_v we_o for_o the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o holiness_n and_o concur_v with_o the_o other_o two_o that_o follow_v to_o work_v in_o we_o a_o rational_a propensity_n to_o this_o practice_n be_v that_o we_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n we_o must_v reckon_v that_o the_o breach_n of_o amity_n which_o sin_n have_v make_v betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o be_v make_v up_o by_o a_o firm_a reconciliation_n to_o his_o love_n and_o favour_n and_o herein_o i_o include_v the_o great_a benefit_n of_o justification_n as_o the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n which_o be_v describe_v in_o scripture_n either_o by_o forgive_a our_o sin_n or_o by_o the_o imputation_n of_o righteousness_n to_o we_o rom._n 4.5_o 6_o 7._o because_o both_o be_v contain_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o justify_v act_n as_o one_o act_n of_o illumination_n comprehend_v expulsion_n of_o darkness_n and_o introduction_n of_o light_n one_o act_n of_o repentance_n contain_v mortification_n of_o sin_n and_o vivification_n to_o righteousness_n and_o every_o motion_n from_o any_o thing_n to_o its_o contrary_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o though_o it_o may_v be_v express_v by_o divers_a name_n with_o respect_n to_o either_o of_o the_o two_o contrary_a term_n the_o one_o of_o which_o be_v abolish_v the_o other_o introduce_v by_o it_o this_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n contrary_a to_o the_o apprehension_n not_o only_o of_o the_o vulgar_a but_o of_o some_o learned_a divine_n that_o we_o must_v be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o justify_v by_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o imputation_n of_o righteousness_n before_o any_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v be_v enable_v for_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o they_o account_v that_o this_o doctrine_n tend_v to_o the_o subversion_n of_o a_o holy_a practice_n and_o be_v a_o great_a pillar_n of_o antinemianism_n and_o that_o the_o only_a way_n to_o establish_v sincere_a obedience_n be_v to_o make_v it_o rather_o a_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v before_o our_o actual_a justification_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n therefore_o some_o late_a divine_n have_v think_v sit_v to_o bring_v the_o doctrine_n of_o former_a protestant_n concern_v justification_n to_o their_o anvil_n and_o to_o hammer_v it_o into_o another_o form_n that_o it_o may_v be_v more_o free_a from_o antinomianism_n and_o effectual_a to_o secure_v a_o holy_a practice_n but_o their_o labour_n be_v vain_a and_o pernicious_a tend_v to_o antinemian_a profaneness_n or_o paint_a hypocrisice_n at_o best_a neither_o can_v the_o true_a practice_n of_o holiness_n be_v secure_a except_o the_o persuasion_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n be_v first_o obtain_v without_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v be_v enable_v thereby_o to_o do_v they_o as_o i_o shall_v now_o prove_v by_o several_a argument_n intend_v also_o to_o show_v in_o the_o follow_a direction_n that_o such_o a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n as_o god_n give_v to_o his_o people_n tend_v only_o to_o holiness_n though_o a_o misperswasion_n of_o it_o be_v in_o many_o a_o occasion_n of_o licentiousness_n first_o when_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v frame_v for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n at_o his_o creation_n he_o be_v high_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o have_v no_o sin_n impute_v to_o he_o and_o be_v account_v righteous_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o present_a state_n because_o he_o be_v make_v upright_o according_a to_o god_n image_n and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o doubt_v but_o that_o these_o qualification_n be_v his_o advantage_n for_o a_o holy_a practice_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n judge_v they_o good_a for_o that_o end_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o lose_v they_o he_o become_v dead_a in_o sin_n the_o second_o adam_n also_o in_o our_o nature_n be_v the_o belove_a of_o the_o father_n account_v righteous_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n without_o the_o imputation_n of_o any_o sin_n to_o he_o except_z what_o his_o office_n be_v to_o bear_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o other_o and_o can_v we_o reasonable_o expect_v to_o be_v imitator_n of_o christ_n by_o perform_v more_o difficult_a obedience_n than_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v before_o the_o fall_n except_o the_o like_a advantage_n be_v give_v to_o we_o by_o reconciliation_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o imputation_n of_o a_o righteousness_n give_v by_o god_n to_o we_o when_o we_o have_v none_o of_o our_o own_o second_o those_o that_o know_v that_o natural_a deadness_n under_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n be_v full_o convince_v that_o if_o god_n leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o heart_n they_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o that_o they_o can_v do_v no_o good_a work_n except_o it_o please_v god_n of_o his_o great_a love_n and_o mercy_n to_o work_v it_o in_o they_o joh._n 8.36_o philip._n 2.13_o
rom._n 8.7_o 8._o therefore_o that_o they_o may_v be_v encourage_v and_o rational_o incline_v to_o holiness_n they_o must_v hope_v that_o god_n will_v work_v save_o in_o they_o now_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o considerate_a man_n to_o judge_v whether_o such_o a_o hope_n can_v be_v well_o ground_v without_o a_o good_a persuasion_n of_o such_o a_o reconciliation_n and_o saving-love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o as_o depend_v not_o upon_o any_o precedent_a goodness_n of_o our_o work_n but_o be_v a_o cause_n sufficient_a to_o produce_v they_o effectual_o in_o we_o yea_o we_o know_v further_o if_o we_o know_v ourselves_o sufficient_o that_o our_o death_n in_o sin_n proceed_v from_o the_o gild_n of_o the_o first_o sin_n of_o adam_n and_o the_o sentence_n denounce_v against_o it_o gen._n 2.17_o and_o that_o it_o be_v still_o maintain_v in_o we_o by_o the_o gild_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o spiritual_a life_n will_v never_o be_v give_v we_o to_o free_v we_o from_o that_o dominion_n except_o this_o gild_n and_o curse_n be_v remove_v from_o we_o which_o be_v do_v by_o actual_a justification_n gal._n 3.13_o 14._o rom._n 6.14_o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o despair_v of_o live_v to_o god_n in_o holiness_n while_o we_o apprehend_v ourselves_o to_o be_v under_o the_o curse_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o transgression_n and_o sin_n still_o lie_v upon_o we_o ezek._n 33.10_o three_o the_o nature_n of_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n be_v such_o as_o require_v a_o apprehension_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o his_o hearty_a love_n and_o favour_n towards_o we_o for_o the_o do_v of_o they_o the_o great_a duty_n be_v love_n to_o god_n with_o our_o whole_a heart_n and_o not_o such_o a_o contemplative_a love_n as_o philosopher_n may_v have_v to_o the_o object_n of_o science_n which_o they_o be_v concern_v in_o no_o further_a than_o to_o please_v their_o fancy_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o but_o a_o practical_a love_n whereby_o we_o be_v willing_a that_o god_n shall_v be_v absolute_a lord_n and_o governor_n of_o we_o and_o all_o the_o world_n to_o dispose_v of_o we_o and_o all_o other_o according_a to_o his_o will_n as_o to_o our_o temporal_a and_o everlasting_a condition_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o only_a portion_n and_o happiness_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v happy_a a_o love_n whereby_o we_o like_v every_o thing_n in_o he_o as_o he_o be_v our_o lord_n his_o justice_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o attribute_n without_o wish_v or_o desire_v that_o he_o be_v better_a than_o he_o be_v and_o whereby_o we_o desire_v that_o his_o will_n may_v be_v do_v upon_o we_o and_o all_o other_o whether_o for_o prosperity_n or_o adversity_n life_n or_o death_n and_o whereby_o we_o can_v hearty_o praise_v he_o for_o all_o thing_n and_o delight_n in_o our_o obedience_n to_o he_o in_o do_v his_o will_n though_o we_o suffer_v that_o which_o be_v never_o so_o grievous_a to_o we_o even_o present_a death_n consider_v these_o thing_n well_o and_o you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o our_o spirit_n be_v not_o in_o a_o fit_a frame_n for_o the_o do_v of_o they_o while_o we_o apprehend_v ourselves_o under_o the_o curse_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n or_o while_o we_o be_v under_o prevail_a suspicion_n that_o god_n will_v prove_v a_o enemy_n to_o we_o at_o last_o slavish_a fear_n may_v extort_v some_o slavish_a hypocritical_a performance_n from_o we_o such_o as_o that_o of_o pharaoh_n in_o let_v the_o israelite_n go_v sore_o against_o his_o will_n but_o the_o duty_n of_o love_n can_v be_v extort_a and_o force_v by_o fear_n but_o it_o must_v be_v win_v and_o sweet_o allure_v by_o a_o apprehension_n of_o god_n love_n and_o goodness_n towards_o we_o as_o that_o eminent_a love_a and_o belove_a disciple_n testify_v 1_o job_n 4.18_o 19_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n in_o love_n but_o perfect_a love_n cast_v out_o fear_n because_o fear_n have_v torment_v he_o that_o fear_v be_v not_o make_v perfect_a in_o love_n we_o love_v he_o because_o he_o first_o love_v we_o observe_v here_o that_o we_o can_v be_v before_o hand_n with_o god_n in_o love_v he_o before_o we_o apprehend_v his_o love_n to_o we_o and_o consult_v your_o own_o experience_n if_o you_o have_v any_o true_a love_n to_o god_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o wrought_v in_o you_o by_o a_o sense_n of_o god_n love_n first_o towards_o you_o all_o the_o goodness_n and_o excellency_n of_o god_n can_v render_v he_o a_o amiable_a object_n to_o we_o except_o we_o apprehend_v he_o a_o agreeable_a good_a to_o we_o i_o question_v not_o but_o the_o devil_n know_v the_o excellency_n of_o god_n nature_n as_o well_o as_o our_o great_a metaphysical_a speculator_n and_o this_o do_v but_o fill_v they_o the_o more_o with_o torment_a horror_n and_o tremble_a that_o be_v contrary_a to_o love_n ja._n 2.19_o the_o great_a god_n excellency_n and_o perfection_n be_v the_o great_a evil_n he_o be_v to_o we_o if_o he_o hate_v we_o and_o curse_v we_o and_o therefore_o the_o principle_n of_o self-preservation_n deep_o root_v in_o our_o nature_n hinder_v we_o from_o love_v that_o which_o we_o apprehend_v as_o our_o own_o destruction_n if_o a_o man_n be_v a_o enemy_n to_o we_o we_o can_v love_v he_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o our_o love_a reconcile_v god_n because_o his_o love_n will_v make_v man_n hatred_n to_o work_v for_o our_o good_a but_o if_o god_n himself_o be_v our_o enemy_n for_o who_o sake_n can_v we_o love_v he_o who_o be_v there_o that_o can_v free_v we_o from_o the_o evil_n of_o his_o enemity_n and_o turn_v it_o to_o our_o advantage_n until_o he_o be_v please_v to_o reconcile_v himself_o to_o we_o four_o our_o conscience_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v first_o purge_v from_o dead_a work_n that_o we_o may_v serve_v the_o live_a god_n and_o this_o be_v do_v by_o actual_a remission_n of_o sin_n procure_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o manifest_v to_o our_o conscience_n as_o appear_v by_o christ_n die_v for_o this_o end_n heb._n 9.14_o 15._o and_o 10.1_o 2._o 4._o 14_o 17_o 22._o that_o conscience_n whereby_o we_o judge_v ourselves_o to_o be_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v account_v a_o evil_a conscience_n in_o scripture_n though_o it_o perform_v its_o office_n true_o because_o it_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o evil_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v itself_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o our_o commit_v more_o sin_n until_o it_o can_v judge_v we_o to_o be_v justify_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o receive_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n love_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n must_v proceed_v from_o a_o good_a conscience_n as_o well_o as_o from_o any_o other_o cleanness_n of_o heart_n 1_o tim._n 1.5_o david_n mouth_n can_v not_o be_v open_v to_o show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n until_o he_o be_v deliver_v from_o bloodguiltiness_n psal_n 51.14_o 15._o this_o evil_a guilty_a conscience_n whereby_o we_o judge_v that_o god_n be_v our_o enemy_n and_o that_o his_o justice_n be_v against_o we_o to_o our_o everlasting_a condemnation_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o sin_n do_v strong_o maintain_v and_o increase_v the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n in_o we_o and_o work_v most_o mischievous_a effect_n in_o the_o soul_n against_o godliness_n even_o to_o bring_v the_o soul_n to_o hate_n god_n and_o to_o wish_v there_o be_v no_o god_n no_o heaven_n no_o hell_n so_o we_o may_v escape_v the_o punishment_n due_a to_o we_o it_o so_o disaffect_v people_n towards_o god_n that_o they_o can_v endure_v to_o think_v or_o speak_v or_o hear_v of_o he_o and_o his_o law_n but_o strive_v either_o to_o put_v he_o out_o of_o their_o mind_n by_o fleshly_a pleasure_n and_o worldly_a employment_n and_o thus_o they_o be_v alienate_v from_o all_o true_a religion_n only_o blind_n it_o and_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o it_o it_o produce_v zeal_n in_o many_o outside_n religious_a performance_n and_o also_o false_a religion_n idolatry_n and_o the_o most_o inhuman_a superstition_n in_o the_o world_n i_o have_v often_o consider_v by_o what_o manner_n of_o work_v any_o sin_n can_v effectual_o destroy_v the_o whole_a image_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o i_o conclude_v it_o be_v by_o work_v first_o a_o evil_a guilty_a conscience_n in_o he_o whereby_o he_o judge_v that_o the_o just_a god_n be_v against_o he_o and_o curse_v he_o for_o that_o one_o sin_n and_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o work_v a_o shameful_a nakedness_n by_o disorderly_a lust_n a_o turn_v his_o love_n whole_o from_o god_n to_o the_o creature_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n gen._n 3.8_o 10._o which_o be_v a_o total_a destruction_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n holiness_n and_o we_o have_v cause_n to_o
judge_v that_o from_o the_o same_o cause_n proceed_v the_o continual_a malice_n rancour_n rage_n blasphemy_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o many_o notorious_a wicked_a man_n against_o god_n and_o godliness_n some_o may_v think_v job_n uncharitable_a in_o suspect_v not_o mere_o that_o his_o son_n have_v sin_v but_o that_o they_o have_v be_v so_o abominable_o wicked_a as_o to_o curse_v god_n in_o their_o heart_n job_n 1.5_o but_o job_n well_o understand_v that_o if_o the_o guilt_n of_o any_o ordinary_a sin_n lie_v upon_o the_o conscience_n it_o will_v make_v the_o soul_n to_o wish_v secret_o that_o god_n be_v not_o or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o just_a a_o judge_n which_o be_v a_o secret_a curse_v of_o god_n that_o can_v be_v avoid_v until_o our_o conscience_n be_v purge_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o offering_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o which_o be_v then_o figure_v out_o by_o the_o burnt-offering_n of_o job_n for_o his_o son_n five_o god_n have_v abundant_o discover_v to_o we_o in_o his_o word_n that_o his_o method_n in_o bring_v man_n from_o sin_n to_o holiness_n of_o life_n be_v first_o to_o make_v they_o know_v that_o he_o love_v they_o and_o that_o their_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o when_o he_o give_v the_o ten_o commandment_n on_o mount_n sinai_n he_o first_o discover_v himself_o to_o be_v their_o god_n that_o have_v give_v they_o a_o sure_a pledge_n of_o his_o salvation_n by_o their_o delivery_n from_o egypt_n in_o the_o preface_n exod._n 20.2_o and_o during_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n god_n be_v please_v to_o make_v the_o entrance_n into_o religion_n to_o be_v by_o circumcision_n which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o sign_n but_o also_o a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n whereby_o god_n justifi_v people_n while_o they_o be_v consider_v as_o ungodly_a rom._n 4.11.5_o and_o this_o seal_n be_v administer_v to_o child_n of_o eight_o day_n old_a before_o they_o can_v perform_v any_o condition_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n for_o their_o justification_n that_o their_o furniture_n for_o a_o holy_a practice_n may_v be_v ready_a before_o hand_n furthermore_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n god_n appoint_v divers_a wash_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n and_o the_o ash_n of_o a_o heifer_n sprinkle_v the_o unclean_a to_o prepare_v and_o sanctify_v they_o for_o other_o part_n of_o his_o worship_n in_o his_o tabernacle_n and_o temple_n to_o figure_v out_o his_o purge_n of_o their_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v serve_v the_o live_a god_n heb._n 9.9_o 10_o 13_o 14_o 22._o this_o i_o say_v be_v then_o figurative_a sanctification_n as_o the_o word_n sanctification_n be_v take_v in_o a_o large_a sense_n comprehend_v all_o thing_n that_o prepare_v we_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n chief_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n heb._n 10.10_o 14_o 18._o though_o if_o it_o be_v take_v in_o a_o strict_a sense_n respect_v only_o our_o conformity_n to_o the_o law_n it_o must_v necessary_o be_v place_v after_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o usual_a method_n of_o protestant_a divine_n god_n also_o mind_v they_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o purge_v away_o their_o guilt_n first_o that_o their_o service_n may_v be_v acceptable_a by_o command_v they_o to_o offer_v the_o sin-offering_a before_o the_o burnt-offering_a levit._n 5.8_o and_o 16.3_o 11._o and_o lest_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n shall_v pollute_v the_o service_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o particular_a expiation_n god_n be_v please_v to_o appoint_v a_o general_a atonement_n for_o all_o their_o sin_n one_o day_n every_o year_n wherein_o the_o escape_v goat_n be_v to_o bear_v upon_o he_o all_o their_o iniquity_n unto_o a_o land_n not_o inhabit_v levit._n 16.22_o 34._o under_o the_o new_a testament_n god_n use_v the_o same_o method_n in_o love_v we_o first_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o priest_n to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o all_o good_a work_n to_o god_n even_o the_o father_n he_o enter_v we_o into_o his_o service_n by_o wash_v away_o our_o sin_n in_o baptism_n he_o see_v and_o strengthen_v we_o for_o his_o service_n by_o remission_n of_o sin_n give_v to_o we_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o lord_n supper_n he_o exhort_v we_o to_o obey_v he_o because_o he_o have_v already_o love_v we_o and_o our_o sin_n be_v already_o pardon_v forgive_v one_o another_o even_o as_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n have_v forgive_v you_o be_v you_o therefore_o follower_n of_o god_n as_o dear_a child_n and_o walk_v in_o love_n as_o christ_n have_v love_v we_o ephes_n 4.32_o and_o 5.1_o 2._o i_o write_v unto_o you_o little_a child_n because_o your_o sin_n be_v forgive_v you_o for_o his_o name_n sake_n love_v not_o the_o world_n neither_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n 1_o jo._n 2.12_o 15._o i_o may_v quote_v abundance_n of_o text_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n we_o may_v clear_o see_v by_o all_o this_o that_o god_n have_v account_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o have_v condescend_v to_o take_v wonderful_a care_n in_o provide_v plentiful_a mean_n both_o under_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o his_o people_n may_v be_v first_o cleanse_v from_o guilt_n and_o reconcile_v to_o himself_o to_o fit_v they_o for_o the_o acceptable_a practice_n of_o holiness_n away_o then_o with_o all_o the_o contrary_a method_n of_o the_o new_a divinity_n the_o three_o endowment_n necessary_a to_o enable_v we_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n without_o which_o a_o persuasion_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n will_v be_v of_o little_a efficacy_n to_o work_v in_o we_o a_o rational_a propensity_n to_o it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v persuade_v of_o our_o future_a enjoyment_n of_o the_o everlasting_a heavenly_a happiness_n this_o must_v precede_v our_o holy_a practice_n as_o a_o cause_n dispose_v and_o allure_a we_o to_o it_o this_o affertion_n have_v several_a sort_n of_o adversary_n to_o oppose_v it_o some_o account_n that_o a_o persuasion_n of_o our_o own_o future_a happiness_n before_o we_o have_v persevere_v in_o sincere_a obedience_n tend_v to_o licentiousness_n and_o that_o the_o way_n to_o do_v good_a work_n be_v rather_o to_o make_v they_o a_o condition_n necessary_a for_o the_o procure_n of_o this_o persuasion_n other_o condemn_v all_o work_n that_o we_o be_v allure_v or_o stir_v up_o to_o by_o the_o future_a enjoyment_n of_o the_o heavenly_a happiness_n as_o legal_a mercenary_a flow_v from_o self-love_n and_o not_o from_o any_o pure_a love_n to_o god_n and_o they_o figure_v out_o sincere_a godliness_n by_o a_o man_n bear_v fire_n in_o one_o hand_n to_o burn_v up_o heaven_n and_o water_n in_o the_o other_o to_o quench_v hell_n intimate_v that_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n must_v not_o proceed_v at_o all_o from_o hope_n of_o reward_n or_o sear_v of_o punishment_n but_o only_o from_o love_n to_o establish_v the_o truth_n assert_v against_o these_o error_n that_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o it_o and_o to_o each_o other_o i_o shall_v propose_v the_o ensue_a consideration_n first_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v be_v sincere_o and_o universal_o practise_v without_o this_o endowment_n that_o this_o endowment_n must_v be_v present_a in_o we_o be_v sufficicient_o prove_v already_o by_o all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o persuasion_n of_o our_o firm_a reconciliation_n with_o god_n by_o our_o justification_n to_o prepare_v we_o for_o this_o practice_n because_o that_o include_v a_o persuasion_n of_o this_o future_a happiness_n or_o else_o it_o be_v of_o little_a worth_n all_o that_o i_o have_v to_o add_v here_o be_v that_o sincere_a obedience_n can_v rational_o subsist_v except_o it_o be_v allure_v encourage_v and_o support_v by_o this_o persuasion_n let_v i_o therefore_o suppose_v a_o sadducee_n believe_v no_o happiness_n after_o this_o life_n and_o put_v the_o question_n can_v such_o a_o one_o love_v god_n with_o his_o whole_a heart_n may_v and_o soul_n will_v he_o not_o think_v it_o reasonable_a rather_o to_o lessen_v and_o moderate_v his_o love_n towards_o god_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v overmuch_o trouble_v to_o part_v with_o he_o by_o death_n we_o account_v it_o most_o reasonable_a to_o sit_v loose_a in_o our_o affection_n from_o thing_n that_o we_o must_v part_v with_o can_v such_o a_o one_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n as_o his_o happiness_n will_v he_o not_o rather_o account_v that_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n and_o all_o religious_a duty_n be_v vanity_n as_o well_o as_o other_o thing_n because_o in_o a_o little_a time_n we_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o benefit_n by_o they_o than_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v
how_o can_v such_o a_o one_o be_v willing_a to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o god_n when_o by_o his_o death_n he_o must_v part_v with_o god_n as_o well_o as_o with_o other_o thing_n how_o can_v he_o willing_o choose_v affliction_n rather_o than_o sin_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v more_o miserable_a in_o this_o life_n for_o it_o and_o not_o at_o all_o happy_a hereafter_o i_o grant_v if_o affliction_n come_v unavoidable_o upon_o such_o a_o person_n he_o may_v reasonable_o judge_v that_o patience_n be_v better_a for_o he_o than_o impatience_n but_o it_o will_v displease_v he_o that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o the_o use_n of_o such_o a_o virtue_n and_o he_o will_v be_v prone_a to_o fret_v and_o murmur_v at_o his_o creator_n and_o to_o wish_v he_o have_v never_o be_v rather_o than_o to_o endure_v such_o misery_n and_o to_o be_v comfort_v only_o with_o vain_a transitory_a enjoyment_n i_o think_v i_o have_v say_v enough_o to_o show_v how_o unfurnished_a such_o a_o man_n be_v for_o holiness_n and_o he_o that_o will_v burn_v up_o heaven_n and_o quench_v hell_n that_o he_o may_v serve_v god_n out_o of_o love_n do_v thereby_o leave_v himself_o ●_o little_a better_o furnish_v than_o the_o sadduce_v the_o one_o deni_v they_o the_o other_o will_v not_o have_v they_o at_o all_o to_o be_v consider_v in_o this_o case_n second_o the_o sure_a hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n be_v make_v use_n of_o ordinary_o by_o god_n since_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v abundant_o show_v christ_n the_o great_a pattern_n of_o holiness_n for_o the_o joy_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n despise_v the_o shame_n heb._n 12.2_o and_o though_o i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o first_o adam_n have_v such_o a_o sure_a hope_n to_o preserve_v he_o in_o innocency_n yet_o he_o have_v instead_o of_o it_o the_o present_a possession_n of_o a_o earthly_a paradise_n and_o a_o happy_a estate_n in_o it_o which_o he_o know_v will_v last_v if_o he_o continue_v in_o holiness_n or_o be_v change_v into_o a_o better_a happiness_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o faint_a under_o affliction_n because_o they_o know_v that_o it_o work_v for_o they_o a_o more_o exceed_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n 2_o cor._n 4.16_o 17._o the_o believe_a hebrew_n take_v joyful_o the_o spoil_n of_o their_o good_n know_v in_o themselves_o that_o they_o have_v a_o heaven_n a_o better_a and_o more_o endure_a substance_n heb._n 10.34_o the_o apostle_n paul_n account_v all_o his_o suffering_n unprofitable_a be_v it_o not_o for_o a_o glorious_a resurrection_n and_o that_o christian_n will_v be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o epicure_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v choose_v let_v we_o eat_v and_o drmk_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v and_o he_o exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o be_v abundant_a in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n know_v that_o their_o labour_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a in_o the_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 15.58_o as_o worldly_a hope_n keep_v the_o world_n at_o work_n in_o their_o various_a employment_n so_o god_n give_v his_o people_n the_o hope_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o keep_v they_o close_o to_o his_o service_n heb._n 6.11_o 12._o 1_o joh._n 3.3_o and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o sure_a hope_n as_o shall_v never_o make_v they_o ashamed_a rom._n 5.28_o those_o that_o think_v it_o below_o the_o excellency_n of_o their_o love_n to_o work_v out_o of_o hope_n of_o the_o heavenly_a reward_n do_v thereby_o advance_v their_o love_n beyond_o the_o love_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a saint_n and_o even_o of_o christ_n himself_o three_o this_o persuasion_n of_o our_o future_a enjoyment_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n can_v tend_v to_o licentiousness_n if_o we_o understand_v well_o that_o perfect_a holiness_n be_v a_o necessary_a part_n of_o that_o happiness_n and_o that_o though_o we_o have_v a_o title_n to_o that_o happiness_n by_o free_a justification_n and_o adoption_n yet_o we_o must_v go_v to_o the_o possession_n of_o it_o in_o a_o way_n of_o heliness_n 1_o jo._n 3.1_o 2_o 3._o neither_o be_v it_o legal_a or_o mercenary_a to_o be_v move_v by_o this_o persuasion_n see_v the_o persuasion_n itself_o be_v not_o get_v by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o free_a grace_n through_o faith_n gal._n 5.5_o and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o work_n out_o of_o self-love_n yet_o for_o certain_a it_o be_v not_o that_o carnal_a self-love_n which_o the_o scripture_n condemn_v as_o the_o mother_n of_o sinfulness_n 2_o tim._n 3.2_o but_o a_o holy_a self-love_n incline_v we_o to_o prefer_v god_n above_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o world_n such_o as_o god_n direct_v we_o unto_o when_o he_o exhort_v we_o to_o save_v ourselves_o act_v 2.40_o and_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o pure_a love_n of_o god_n that_o it_o bring_v we_o to_o love_n god_n more_o pure_o and_o entire_o the_o more_o good_a and_o beneficial_a we_o apprehend_v god_n to_o we_o to_o all_o eternity_n doubtless_o the_o more_o lovely_a god_n will_v be_v to_o we_o and_o our_o affection_n will_v be_v the_o more_o inflame_a towards_o he_o god_n will_v not_o be_v love_v as_o a_o barren_a wilderness_n a_o land_n of_o darkness_n to_o we_o neither_o will_v he_o be_v serve_v for_o nought_o jer._n 2.31_o be_v 45.19_o he_o will_v think_v it_o a_o dishonour_n to_o he_o to_o be_v own_v by_o we_o as_o our_o god_n if_o he_o have_v not_o prepare_v for_o we_o a_o city_n heb._n 11.16_o and_o he_o draw_v we_o to_o love_v he_o by_o the_o cord_n of_o a_o man_n such_o cord_n as_o the_o love_n of_o man_n use_v to_o be_v draw_v by_o even_o by_o his_o own_o love_n to_o we_o in_o lay_v his_o benefit_n before_o we_o hos_fw-la 11.4_o therefore_o the_o way_n for_o we_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v to_o look_v for_o his_o mercy_n unto_o eternal_a life_n judas_n 21._o the_o last_o endowment_n for_o the_o same_o end_n as_o the_o former_a be_v that_o we_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o sufficient_a strength_n both_o to_o will_v and_o perform_v our_o duty_n acceptable_o until_o we_o come_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o heavenly_a happiness_n this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o error_n of_o those_o that_o account_v it_o sufficient_a if_o we_o have_v strength_n to_o practise_v holiness_n if_o we_o will_v or_o to_o will_v it_o if_o we_o please_v and_o this_o be_v the_o sufficient_a strength_n which_o they_o earnest_o contend_v for_o as_o a_o great_a benefit_n bestow_v on_o all_o mankind_n by_o universal_a redemption_n it_o be_v also_o contrary_a to_o the_o error_n of_o those_o that_o think_v the_o practice_n of_o godliness_n and_o wickedness_n to_o be_v alike_o easy_a except_v only_o some_o difficulty_n in_o the_o first_o alteration_n of_o vicious_a custom_n and_o in_o bear_v persecution_n which_o they_o account_v to_o be_v a_o rare_a case_n since_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n have_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n or_o that_o think_v that_o god_n require_v of_o man_n only_o to_o do_v their_o endeavour_n that_o be_v what_o they_o can_v do_v and_o it_o be_v nonsense_n to_o say_v they_o can_v do_v what_o they_o can_v do_v according_a to_o their_o judgement_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o concern_v ourselves_o much_o about_o sufficient_a strength_n for_o holy_a practice_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o assertion_n against_o these_o error_n take_v these_o argument_n first_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n unable_a to_o will_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_o good_a notwithstanding_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n until_o we_o be_v actual_o quicken_v by_o christ_n ephes_n 2_o 1●_n rom._n 8.7_o 8_o 9_o those_o that_o be_v sufficient_o enlighten_v and_o humble_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v natural_o in_o this_o case_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o want_v only_o executive_a power_n to_o do_v good_a but_o chief_o a_o heart_n to_o will_v it_o and_o to_o be_v please_v with_o it_o and_o that_o if_o god_n work_v not_o in_o they_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v they_o shall_v neither_o will_n nor_o do_v any_o thing_n please_v to_o he_o phil._n 2.13_o and_o that_o if_o he_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o corruption_n after_o he_o have_v begin_v the_o good_a work_n they_o shall_v certain_o prove_v vile_a apostate_n and_o their_o latter_a end_n will_v be_v worse_o than_o their_o beginning_n we_o may_v conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o whosoever_o can_v courageous_o attempt_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o law_n without_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o a_o sufficient_a power_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o be_v hearty_o willing_a as_o well_o as_o to_o perform_v when_o he_o be_v
and_o soul_n be_v and_o the_o spirit_n lively_a instrument_n rather_o than_o the_o principal_a cause_n neither_o will_v a_o believer_n be_v necessary_o perfectin_a holiness_n here_o by_o or_o christ_n make_v a_o sinner_n for_o christ_n know_v how_o to_o dwell_v in_o a_o believer_n by_o certain_a measure_n and_o degree_n and_o to_o make_v they_o holy_a so_o far_o only_o as_o he_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o though_o this_o union_n seem_v too_o high_a a_o preferment_n for_o such_o unworthy_a creature_n as_o we_o be_v yet_o consider_v the_o preciousness_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v redeem_v we_o shall_v dishonour_v god_n if_o we_o shall_v not_o expect_v a_o miraculous_a advancement_n to_o the_o high_a dignity_n that_o creature_n be_v capable_a of_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o that_o blood_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o union_n contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o sense_n because_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o union_n be_v spiritual_a fall_v not_o at_o all_o under_o the_o judgement_n of_o sense_n several_a learned_a man_n of_o late_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o union_n betwixt_o christ_n and_o believer_n than_o such_o as_o person_n or_o thing_n whole_o separate_v may_v have_v by_o their_o mutual_a relation_n each_o to_o other_o and_o according_o they_o interpret_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o speak_v of_o this_o union_n when_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n they_o account_v that_o a_o political_a head_n or_o governor_n be_v the_o thing_n mean_v when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o his_o people_n and_o they_o in_o he_o they_o think_v that_o the_o proper_a meaning_n be_v that_o christ_n law_n doctrine_n grace_n salvation_n or_o that_o godliness_n be_v in_o they_o and_o embrace_v by_o they_o so_o that_o christ_n here_o must_v not_o be_v take_v for_o christ_n himself_o but_o for_o some_o other_o thing_n wrought_v in_o they_o by_o christ_n when_o christ_n and_o believer_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o spirit_n and_o one_o flesh_n they_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o agreement_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o affection_n as_o if_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o this_o union_n mention_v ephes_n 5.32_o consist_v rather_o in_o a_o harsh_a hope_n or_o a_o dark_a improper_a expression_n than_o in_o the_o depth_n and_o abstruceness_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o as_o if_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v affect_v obscure_a intricate_a expression_n when_o they_o speak_v to_o this_o church_n of_o thing_n very_o plain_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v thus_o that_o great_a mystery_n the_o union_n of_o believer_n with_o christ_n himself_o which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v be_v high_o own_v former_o both_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o many_o eminent_a protestant_a divine_n particular_a writer_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o by_o a_o very_a general_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n in_o many_o age_n be_v now_o explode_a out_o of_o the_o new_a model_n of_o divinity_n the_o reason_n of_o explode_v it_o as_o i_o judge_v in_o charity_n be_v not_o because_o our_o late_a learned_a refiner_n of_o divinity_n think_v themselves_o less_o able_a to_o defend_v it_o than_o the_o other_o two_o mysterious_a union_n and_o to_o silence_v the_o objection_n of_o those_o proud_a sophister_n that_o will_v not_o believe_v what_o they_o can_v comprehend_v but_o rather_o because_o they_o account_v it_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o sinew_n of_o antinomianism_n that_o lie_v unobserved_a in_o the_o former_a usual_a doctrine_n that_o it_o tend_v to_o puff_n up_o man_n with_o a_o persuasion_n that_o they_o be_v justify_v and_o have_v eternal_a life_n in_o they_o already_o and_o that_o they_o need_v not_o depend_v any_o long_o upon_o their_o uncertain_a performance_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n for_o salvation_n whereby_o they_o account_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o a_o holy_a practice_n to_o be_v subvert_v but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n have_v lay_v another_o manner_n of_o foundation_n for_o a_o holy_a practice_n than_o they_o imagine_v of_o which_o this_o union_n which_o the_o builder_n refuse_v be_v a_o principal_a stone_n next_o to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o their_o corrupt_a gloss_n upon_o the_o scripture_n that_o prove_v it_o i_o assert_v that_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o subjection_n to_o christ_n as_o a_o political_a head_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o of_o the_o abide_n of_o his_o law_n doctrine_n grace_n salvation_n and_o all_o godliness_n in_o we_o and_o of_o our_o agreement_n with_o he_o in_o our_o mind_n and_o affection_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v altogether_o the_o same_o thing_n with_o they_o and_o this_o assertion_n be_v useful_a for_o a_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o union_n it_o be_v not_o a_o privilege_n procure_v by_o our_o sincere_a obedience_n and_o holiness_n as_o some_o may_v imagine_v or_o a_o reward_n of_o good_a work_n reserve_v for_o we_o in_o another_o world_n but_o it_o be_v a_o privilege_n bestow_v upon_o believer_n in_o their_o very_a first_o entrance_n into_o a_o holy_a state_n on_o which_o all_o ability_n to_o do_v good_a work_n do_v depend_v and_o all_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n do_v follow_v after_o it_o as_o fruit_n produce_v by_o it_o have_v thus_o far_o explain_v the_o direction_n i_o shall_v now_o show_v that_o though_o the_o truth_n contain_v in_o it_o be_v above_o the_o search_n of_o natural_a reason_n yet_o it_o be_v evident_o discover_v to_o those_o that_o have_v their_o understanding_n open_v to_o discern_v that_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o the_o mysterious_a way_n of_o sanctification_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n first_o there_o be_v several_a place_n in_o scripture_n that_o do_v plain_o express_v it_o some_o text_n show_v th●●_n all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o our_o salvation_n be_v treasure_v 〈◊〉_d for_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o comprehend_v in_o his_o fullness_n 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o must_v have_v they_o thence_o or_o 〈◊〉_d at_o all_o col._n 1.19_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v and_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n col._n 2.11_o 12_o 13._o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o the_o holy_a nature_n whereby_o we_o live_v to_o god_n be_v first_o produce_v in_o he_o by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n in_o who_o also_o you_o be_v circumcise_v in_o put_v off_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n bury_v with_o he_o quicken_v together_o with_o he_o when_o you_o be_v dead_a in_o your_o sin_n ephes_n 1.3_o who_o have_v bless_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ._n a_o holy_a frame_n of_o spirit_n with_o all_o its_o necessary_a qualification_n must_v needs_o be_v comprehend_v here_o in_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n and_o these_o be_v give_v we_o in_o christ_n person_n in_o heavenly_a place_n as_o prepared_z and_o treasure_v up_o in_o he_o for_o we_o while_o we_o be_v upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v our_o holy_a endowment_n out_o of_o he_o or_o not_o at_o all_o in_o this_o text_n some_o choose_v rather_o to_o read_v heavenly_a thing_n as_o in_o the_o margin_n because_o neither_o place_n nor_o thing_n be_v express_v in_o the_o original_a but_o the_o former_a textual_a read_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o marginal_n as_o be_v the_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o original_a greek_a phrase_n which_o be_v and_o must_v necessary_o be_v so_o render_v in_o two_o other_o place_n of_o this_o same_o epistle_n chap._n 3.10_o &_o 6.12_o another_o text_n be_v 1_o cor._n 1.30_o which_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v of_o god_n make_v unto_o we_o sanctification_n by_o which_o we_o be_v able_a to_o walk_v holy_o as_o well_o as_o wise_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o which_o we_o be_v save_o wise_a and_o righteousness_n by_o the_o imputation_n of_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o redemption_n whereby_o we_o be_v redeem_v from_o all_o misery_n to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o his_o glory_n as_o our_o happiness_n in_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n other_o text_n of_o scripture_n show_v plain_o that_o we_o receive_v our_o holiness_n out_o of_o his_o fullness_n by_o fellowship_n with_o he_o joh._n 1.16_o 17._o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v we_o all_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n and_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o grace_n answerable_a to_o the_o law_n give_v by_o moses_n which_o must_v needs_o include_v the_o grace_n of_o sanctification_n 1_o joh._n 1.3_o 5_o 6_o 7._o true_o our_o fellowship_n be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ._n god_n be_v light_a if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o light_n we_o have_v fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o hence_o
in_o three_o particular_n one_a the_o grace_n of_o faith_n be_v as_o well_o fit_v for_o the_o soul_n receive_v of_o christ_n and_o union_n with_o he_o as_o any_o instrument_n of_o the_o body_n be_v for_o receive_v and_o close_v with_o thing_n needful_a for_o it_o by_o the_o very_a act_n of_o hearty_a trust_n or_o believe_v on_o christ_n for_o all_o salvation_n and_o happiness_n the_o soul_n heave_v and_o put_v away_o from_o itself_o every_o thing_n that_o keep_v it_o at_o a_o distance_n from_o christ_n as_o all_o confidence_n in_o our_o own_o strength_n endeavour_n work_n privilege_n or_o in_o any_o worldly_a pleasure_n profit_n honour_n or_o in_o any_o humane_a help_n and_o succour_n for_o our_o happiness_n and_o salvation_n because_o such_o confidence_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o our_o confidence_n in_o christ_n for_o all_o salvation_n paul_n by_o his_o confidence_n in_o christ_n be_v take_v off_o from_o all_o confidence_n in_o the_o flesh_n he_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o glory_v in_o his_o privilege_n legal_a righteousness_n and_o count_v all_o other_o enjoyment_n in_o matter_n of_o the_o world_n or_o of_o religion_n to_o be_v but_o dung_n that_o he_o may_v win_v christ_n and_o be_v find_v in_o he_o phil._n 3.3_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o the_o voice_n of_o faith_n be_v ashur_n shall_v not_o save_v we_o neither_o will_v we_o ride_v upon_o horse_n neither_o will_v we_o say_v any_o more_o to_o the_o work_n of_o our_o hand_n you_o be_v our_o god_n for_o in_o thou_o the_o fatherless_a find_v mercy_n hos_fw-la 14.3_o we_o have_v no_o might_n against_o this_o great_a company_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n neither_o know_v we_o what_o to_o do_v but_o our_o eye_n be_v upon_o thou_o 2_o chron._n 20.12_o i_o may_v multiply_v place_n of_o scripture_n to_o show_v what_o a_o self_n empty_v grace_n faith_n be_v and_o how_o it_o cast_v other_o considence_n out_o of_o the_o soul_n by_o get_v above_o they_o to_o christ_n as_o the_o only_a happiness_n and_o salvation_n the_o same_o act_n of_o trust_v or_o believe_v on_o christ_n or_o on_o god_n be_v the_o very_a manner_n of_o our_o soul_n come_v to_o christ_n joh._n 6.35_o draw_v near_o to_o the_o lord_n psal_n 73.28_o flee_v unto_o the_o lord_n to_o hide_v we_o psal_n 143.9_o make_v our_o resuge_n in_o the_o shadow_n of_o his_o wing_n psal_n 57.1_o stay_v ourselves_o and_o our_o mind_n upon_o the_o lord_n isa_n 50.10_o &_o 26.3_o lay_v hold_n of_o eternal_a life_n 1_o tim._n 6.12_o lift_v up_o ourselves_o to_o the_o lord_n psal_n 51.1_o 2._o roll_v our_o way_n and_o cast_v our_o burden_n upon_o the_o lord_n psal_n 37.5_o &_o 55.22_o and_o of_o our_o eat_n and_o drink_v christ_n as_o have_v already_o appear_v let_v we_o consider_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n can_v be_v see_v or_o handle_v or_o attain_v to_o by_o any_o bodily_a motion_n but_o be_v reveal_v and_o promise_v to_o we_o in_o the_o word_n now_o let_v any_o invent_v if_o they_o can_v any_o way_n for_o the_o soul_n to_o exercise_v any_o motion_n or_o activeness_n in_o receive_v of_o this_o unseen_a promise_a salvation_n beside_o believe_v the_o word_n and_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o the_o benefit_n promise_v if_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v earn_v by_o work_n or_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o conditional_a faith_n than_o this_o yet_o a_o faith_n must_v be_v instrumental_a to_o receive_v he_o some_o think_v love_n as_o sit_v to_o be_v the_o unite_n grace_n but_o i_o have_v show_v that_o love_n to_o christ_n salvation_n be_v a_o ingredient_n into_o faith_n and_o though_o love_v be_v a_o appetite_n unto_o union_n yet_o we_o have_v no_o other_o likely_a way_n to_o fill_v this_o appetite_n while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o world_n beside_o trust_n on_o christ_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n as_o he_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o gospel_n two_o there_o be_v in_o this_o saving-faith_n a_o natural_a tendency_n to_o furnish_v the_o soul_n with_o a_o holy_a frame_n and_o nature_n and_o all_o endowment_n necessary_a thereunto_o out_o of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n a_o hearty_a affectionate_a truss_v on_o christ_n for_o all_o his_o salvation_n as_o free_o promise_v to_o we_o have_v natural_o enough_o to_o work_v in_o our_o soul_n a_o rational_a bent_n and_o inclination_n to_o and_o ability_n for_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o holiness_n because_o it_o comprehend_v in_o it_o a_o trust_v that_o through_o christ_n we_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n and_o alive_a to_o god_n and_o that_o our_o old_a man_n be_v crucify_v rom._n 6.2_o 6_o 4._o and_o that_o we_o live_v by_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.25_o and_o that_o we_o have_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o god_n be_v our_o god_n psal_n 31.14_o and_o that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o lord_n righteousness_n and_o strength_n whereby_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n isa_n 45.24_o phil._n 4.13_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v glortens_o happy_a in_o the_o anjoyment_n of_o christ_n to_o all_o eternity_n phil._n 3.20_o 21._o when_o the_o saint_n in_o scripture_n speak_v so_o high_o of_o such_o glorious_a spiritual_a privilege_n as_o i_o have_v here_o name_v they_o acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o familiar_a fence_n and_o language_n of_o their_o faith_n trust_v on_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o they_o give_v we_o but_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o content_n of_o it_o and_o they_o speak_v of_o nothing_o more_o than_o what_o they_o receive_v out_o of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n and_o how_o can_v we_o otherwise_o judge_v but_o that_o those_o that_o have_v a_o hearty_a love_n to_o christ_n and_o can_v upon_o a_o good_a ground_n think_v and_o speak_v such_o high_a thing_n concern_v themselves_o must_v needs_o be_v hearty_o dispose_v and_o mighty_o strengthen_v for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n three_o because_o faith_n have_v such_o a_o natural_a tendency_n to_o dispose_v and_o strengthen_v the_o soul_n for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n we_o have_v cause_n to_o judge_v it_o a_o meet_a instrument_n to_o accomplish_v every_o part_n of_o that_o practice_n in_o a_o acceptable_a manner_n those_o that_o with_o a_o due_a affection_n believe_v steadfast_o on_o christ_n for_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o all_o his_o salvation_n may_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o they_o be_v carry_v forth_o by_o that_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o its_o strength_n or_o weakness_n to_o love_n god_n hearty_o because_o god_n have_v love_v they_o first_o 1_o joh._n 4.19_o to_o praise_v he_o to_o pray_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n ephes_n 5.26_o john_n 16.26_o 27._o to_o be_v patient_a with_o cheerfulness_n under_o all_o affliction_n give_v thanks_o to_o the_o father_n that_o have_v call_v they_o to_o his_o heavenly_a inheritance_n col._n 1.11_o 12._o to_o love_n all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n out_o of_o love_n to_o their_o heavenly_a father_n 1_o john_n 5.1_o to_o walk_v as_o christ_n walk_v 1_o john_n 2.6_o and_o to_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o live_v to_o christ_n in_o all_o thing_n as_o constrain_v by_o his_o love_n in_o die_v for_o they_o 2_o cor._n 5.14_o we_o have_v a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n concern_v the_o excellent_a work_n that_o be_v produce_v by_o faith_n heb._n 11._o and_o though_o trust_v on_o christ_n be_v account_v such_o a_o slight_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n yet_o i_o know_v no_o work_n of_o obedience_n which_o it_o be_v not_o able_a to_o produce_v and_o note_v the_o excellent_a manner_n of_o work_v by_o faith_n by_o it_o we_o live_v and_o act_v in_o all_o good_a work_n as_o people_n in_o christ_n as_o raise_v above_o ourselves_o and_o our_o natural_a state_n by_o partake_v of_o he_o and_o his_o salvation_n and_o we_o do_v all_o in_o his_o name_n and_o on_o his_o account_n this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o that_o mysterious_a manner_n of_o live_v to_o god_n in_o holiness_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o christian_a religion_n wherein_o we_o live_v and_o yet_o not_o we_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o we_o gal._n 2.20_o and_o who_o can_v imagine_v any_o other_o way_n but_o this_o for_o such_o a_o practice_n while_o christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n be_v know_v to_o we_o only_o by_o the_o gospel_n the_o explanation_n that_o i_o have_v make_v of_o the_o nature_n and_o office_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o of_o its_o aptitude_n for_o its_o office_n be_v sufficient_a to_o evidence_n that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o holy_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v call_v judas_n 20._o and_o that_o such_o a_o trust_n on_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v describe_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n can_v have_v any_o tendency_n to_o licentiousness_n but_o only_o to_o holiness_n and_o that_o it_o root_v and_o ground_v we_o in_o holiness_n more_o than_o the_o mere_a accept_n of_o any_o term_n of_o salvation_n and_o consent_v to_o have_v christ_n for_o our_o lord_n can_v do_v
and_o be_v more_o powerful_a to_o secure_v a_o holy_a practice_n than_o any_o of_o those_o resolution_n of_o obedience_n or_o resignate_a act_n that_o some_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o great_a condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n which_o be_v indeed_o no_o better_o than_o hypocritical_a act_n if_o they_o be_v not_o produce_v by_o this_o faith_n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o counterfeit_n dead_a faith_n such_o as_o wicked_a man_n may_v have_v and_o if_o that_o tend_v to_o licentiousness_n let_v not_o true_a faith_n be_v blame_v but_o rather_o mark_v the_o description_n of_o it_o which_o i_o have_v give_v that_o you_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v with_o a_o counterfeit_a faith_n instead_o of_o it_o i_o shall_v add_v something_o concern_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o this_o excellent_a grace_n and_o of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n by_o it_o whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o slight_a and_o easy_a a_o way_n of_o salvation_n as_o some_o may_v imagine_v the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o our_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o infinite_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o god_n and_o christ_n himself_o by_o the_o spirit_n for_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n 1_o cor_n 12.12_o 13._o god_n grant_v we_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o be_v strengthen_v with_o all_o might_n by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n ephes_n 3.16_o 17._o if_o we_o do_v but_o consider_v the_o great_a effect_n of_o faith_n that_o by_o it_o we_o be_v raise_v to_o live_v above_o our_o natural_a condition_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n live_v in_o we_o we_o can_v rational_o conceive_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v within_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o advance_v we_o so_o high_a if_o god_n have_v do_v no_o more_o for_o we_o in_o our_o sanctification_n than_o to_o restore_v we_o to_o our_o first_o natural_a holiness_n yet_o this_o can_v not_o have_v be_v do_v without_o put_v forth_o his_o own_o almighty_a power_n to_o quicken_v those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n how_o much_o more_o be_v this_o almighty_a power_n needful_a to_o advance_v we_o to_o this_o wonderful_a new_a kind_n of_o frame_n wherein_o we_o live_v and_o act_v above_o all_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n by_o a_o high_a principle_n of_o life_n than_o be_v give_v to_o adam_n in_o innocency_n even_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n live_v and_o act_v in_o we_o the_o natural_a man_n bring_v forth_o his_o offspring_n according_a to_o his_o image_n by_o that_o natural_a power_n of_o multiply_v with_o which_o god_n bless_v he_o at_o his_o first_o creation_n but_o the_o second_o adam_n bring_v forth_o his_o offspring_n new_o bear_v according_a to_o his_o image_n only_o by_o the_o spirit_n joh._n 3.5_o as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o even_o those_o that_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n be_v bear_v not_o of_o blood_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n joh._n 1.12_o 13._o christ_n take_v his_o own_o humane_a nature_n into_o personal_a union_n with_o himself_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o she_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a overshadow_v she_o the_o same_o power_n whereby_o the_o world_n be_v create_v luke_n 1.35_o so_o he_o take_v we_o into_o mystical_a union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o himself_o by_o no_o less_o than_o a_o infinite_a create_a power_n for_o we_o be_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n ephes_n 2.10_o and_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n 2_o cor._n 5.17_o for_o the_o accomplish_n of_o this_o great_a work_n of_o our_o new_a creation_n in_o christ_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v first_o work_n upon_o our_o heart_n by_o and_o with_o the_o gospel_n to_o produce_v in_o we_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o the_o gospel_n shall_v come_v to_o we_o in_o word_n only_o and_o not_o in_o power_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n paul_n may_v labour_v to_o plant_v and_o apollo_n to_o water_v without_o any_o success_n because_o we_o can_v receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n yea_o we_o shall_v account_v they_o foolishness_n until_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n enable_v we_o to_o discern_v they_o 1_o thess_n 1.5_o 1_o cor._n 3.6_o &_o 2.14_o we_o shall_v never_o come_v to_o christ_n by_o any_o teach_n of_o man_n except_o we_o also_o hear_v and_o learn_v of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v draw_v to_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n john_n 6.44_o 45._o and_o when_o save_v faith_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o the_o same_o spirit_n give_v we_o fast_o hold_v of_o christ_n by_o it_o as_o he_o open_v the_o mouth_n of_o faith_n to_o receive_v christ_n so_o he_o fill_v it_o with_o christ_n or_o else_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n will_v be_v like_o a_o dream_n of_o one_o that_o think_v that_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o when_o he_o awake_v he_o find_v himself_o empty_a the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v both_o give_v that_o faith_n whereby_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v and_o do_v work_v also_o the_o miracle_n by_o it_o so_o also_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v work_v save_v faith_n in_o we_o and_o do_v answer_v the_o aim_n and_o end_n of_o that_o faith_n by_o give_v we_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n by_o it_o so_o that_o none_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o work_n belong_v to_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n and_o indeed_o faith_n be_v of_o such_o a_o humble_a self-denying_a nature_n that_o it_o ascribe_v nothing_o that_o it_o receive_v to_o itself_o but_o all_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o god_n save_v we_o by_o faith_n that_o all_o the_o glory_n may_v be_v ascribe_v to_o his_o freegrace_n rom._n 4.16_o if_o adam_n have_v strength_n enough_o in_o innocency_n to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o faith_n as_o well_o as_o we_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v strength_n enough_o to_o raise_v himself_o above_o his_o natural_a state_n into_o union_n with_o christ_n because_o faith_n do_v not_o unite_v we_o to_o christ_n by_o its_o own_o virtue_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n work_v by_o it_o and_o with_o it_o thus_o we_o be_v first_o passive_a and_o then_o active_a in_o this_o great_a work_n of_o mystical_a union_n we_o be_v first_o apprehend_v of_o christ_n and_o then_o we_o apprehend_v christ_n christ_n enter_v first_o into_o the_o soul_n to_o join_v himself_o to_o it_o by_o give_v it_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o the_o soul_n receive_v christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n by_o their_o own_o power_n as_o the_o sun_n first_o enlighten_v our_o eye_n and_o then_o we_o can_v see_v it_o by_o its_o own_o light_n we_o may_v note_v further_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o this_o union_n be_v full_o accomplish_v by_o christ_n give_v the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n to_o we_o even_o before_o we_o act_v that_o faith_n in_o the_o reception_n of_o he_o because_o by_o this_o grace_n or_o spirit_n of_o faith_n the_o soul_n be_v incline_v and_o dispose_v to_o a_o active_a receive_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o doubt_n christ_n be_v thus_o unite_a to_o many_o infant_n who_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o can_v act_v faith_n because_o they_o be_v not_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o their_o understanding_n but_o those_o of_o ripe_a year_n that_o be_v join_v passive_o to_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n will_v also_o join_v themselves_o with_o he_o active_o by_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o until_o they_o act_v this_o faith_n they_o can_v know_v or_o enjoy_v their_o union_n with_o christ_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o it_o or_o make_v use_n of_o it_o in_o act_v any_o other_o duty_n of_o holiness_n acceptable_o in_o this_o life_n direct_v v._o we_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o true_a holiness_n by_o any_o of_o our_o endeavour_n while_o we_o continue_v in_o our_o natural_a state_n and_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o a_o new_a state_n by_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n through_o faith_n explication_n it_o it_o evident_a all_o have_v not_o that_o precious_a faith_n whereby_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n yea_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v it_o be_v small_a comparative_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o lie_v in_o wickedness_n 1_o joh._n 5.19_o 20._o and_o many_o of_o those_o that_o at_o length_n attain_v unto_o it_o do_v
a_o natural_a state_n because_o we_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n or_o else_o we_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n joh._n 3.3_o 5._o and_o we_o be_v create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v before_o ordain_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o if_o we_o can_v love_v god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n as_o the_o law_n require_v without_o a_o new-birth_n and_o creation_n we_o may_v live_v without_o they_o for_o christ_n have_v say_v this_o do_v and_o thou_o shall_v live_v luke_n 10.28_o now_o a_o new-birth_n and_o creation_n be_v more_o than_o a_o mere_a reform_v and_o repair_v our_o natural_a state_n if_o we_o be_v put_v into_o a_o certain_a state_n and_o condition_n by_o the_o first_o birth_n and_o greation_n much_o more_o by_o the_o second_o for_o the_o first_o produce_v the_o substance_n of_o a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o a_o state_n the_o second_o have_v nothing_o to_o produce_v but_o a_o new_a state_n of_o the_o same_o person_n and_o note_v that_o we_o be_v first_o create_v and_o bear_v in_o adam_n the_o natural_a man_n but_o our_o new-birth_n and_o creation_n be_v in_o christ_n the_o spiritual_a man_n and_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v in_o a_o new-state_n far_o different_a from_o the_o state_n of_o adam_n before_o the_o fall_n he_o be_v whole_o a_o new_a creature_n as_o it_o be_v write_v old_a thing_n be_v pass_v away_o behold_v all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a 2._o cor._n 5.17_o three_o it_o be_v positive_o assert_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n that_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n rom._n 8.8_o many_o be_v too_o overly_o and_o negligent_a in_o consider_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o gospel-phrase_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n they_o understand_v no_o more_o by_o it_o than_o to_o be_v sinful_a or_o to_o be_v addict_v inordinate_o to_o please_v the_o sensitive_a appetite_n they_o shall_v consider_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v here_o of_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o sinfulness_n as_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o holiness_n and_o whatever_o cause_n it_o be_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v distinct_a from_o its_o effect_n sin_n be_v a_o property_n of_o the_o flesh_n or_o something_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o flesh_n rom._n 7.18_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o flesh_n itself_o the_o flesh_n be_v that_o which_o lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.17_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o mere_o sinful_a lust_n the_o true_a interpretation_n be_v that_o by_o flesh_n be_v mean_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n as_o it_o be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n and_o propagate_v from_o he_o to_o we_o in_o that_o corrupt_a state_n by_o natural_a generation_n and_o to_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v to_o be_v in_o a_o natural_a state_n as_o to_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v in_o a_o new_a state_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o rom._n 8.9_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n be_v call_v flesh_n because_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o carnal_a generation_n and_o the_o new_a nature_n be_v call_v spirit_n because_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o spiritual_a regeneration_n that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v spirit_n john_n 3.6_o so_o the_o apostle_n if_o he_o be_v right_o understand_v have_v say_v enough_o to_o make_v we_o despair_v utter_o of_o attain_v to_o true_a holiness_n while_o we_o continue_v in_o a_o natural_a sit_v four_o the_o apostle_n testify_v that_o those_o that_o have_v be_v teach_v as_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o jesus_n have_v learned_a to_o avoid_v the_o former_a sinful_a conversation_n by_o put_v off_o the_o old-man_n which_o be_v corrupt_a according_a to_o the_o deceitful_a lust_n and_o by_o put_v on_o the_o newman_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n ephes_n 4.21.22_o 24._o put_v on_o the_o old-man_n and_o put_v on_o the_o newman_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o not_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o forego_n testimony_n that_o be_v put_v off_o our_o natural_a state_n and_o put_v on_o a_o new_a state_n by_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n the_o apostle_n himself_o show_v that_o by_o the_o new_a man_n be_v mean_v that_o excellent_a state_n where_o christ_n be_v all_o and_o in_o all_o col._n 3.11_o therefore_o by_o the_o old_a man_n must_v needs_o be_v mean_v the_o natural_a state_n of_o man_n wherein_o he_o be_v without_o the_o save_a enjoyment_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v call_v old_a because_o of_o the_o new_a state_n to_o which_o believer_n be_v bring_v by_o their_o regeneration_n in_o christ_n this_o be_v a_o manner_n of_o expression_n peculiar_a to_o the_o gospel_n as_o well_o as_o the_o former_a and_o as_o slight_o consider_v by_o those_o that_o think_v that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v be_v only_o that_o they_o shall_v put_v off_o sinfulness_n and_o put_v on_o holiness_n in_o their_o conversation_n and_o so_o they_o think_v to_o become_v new_a man_n by_o turn_v a_o new_a leaf_n in_o their_o practice_n and_o lead_v a_o new_a life_n let_v they_o learn_v here_o that_o the_o old_a and_o new_a man_n be_v two_o contrary_a state_n contain_v in_o they_o not_o only_a sin_n and_o holiness_n but_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o dispose_v and_o incline_v we_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o they_o and_o that_o the_o old_a man_n must_v be_v put_v off_o as_o orucify_v with_o christ_n before_o we_o can_v be_v free_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o sin_n rom._n 6.6_o 7._o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v lead_v a_o new_a life_n until_o we_o have_v first_o get_v a_o new_a state_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n let_v i_o add_v here_o that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o same_o rom._n 13.12_o 13_o 14._o where_o he_o direct_v we_o to_o put_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v cast_v off_o the_o deed_n of_o darkness_n and_o walk_v honest_o as_o in_o the_o day_n time_n not_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n five_o our_o natural_a state_n have_v several_a property_n that_o whole_o disable_v we_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n and_o enslave_v we_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o sin_n while_o we_o continue_v in_o it_o here_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o the_o old_a man_n the_o flesh_n or_o natural_a state_n be_v not_o only_a sin_n as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o but_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o several_a thing_n which_o i_o shall_v name_v that_o make_v it_o to_o be_v sinful_a beside_o several_a other_o thing_n that_o make_v it_o miserable_a i_o have_v show_v that_o in_o christ_n we_o have_v all_o endowment_n necessary_a to_o frame_v we_o for_o godliness_n so_o in_o our_o fleshly_a state_n we_o have_v all_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o holy_a frame_n one_o thing_n belong_v to_o our_o natural_a state_n be_v the_o gild_n of_o sin_n even_o of_o adam_n first_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o sinful_a depravation_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o of_o all_o our_o own_o actual_a transgression_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n ephes_n 2.3_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n the_o benefit_n of_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o freedom_n from_o condemnation_n be_v not_o give_v to_o we_o in_o the_o flesh_n or_o in_o a_o natural_a state_n but_o only_o in_o christ_n rom._n 8.1_o ephes_n 1.7_o and_o can_v we_o imagine_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o prevail_v against_o sin_n while_o god_n be_v against_o he_o and_o curse_v he_o another_o property_n inseparable_a from_o the_o former_a be_v a_o evil_a conscience_n which_o denounce_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o we_o for_o sin_n and_o incline_v we_o to_o abhor_v he_o as_o our_o enemy_n rather_o than_o to_o love_v he_o as_o have_v be_v show_v or_o if_o it_o be_v a_o blind_a conscience_n it_o harden_v we_o the_o more_o in_o our_o sin_n a_o three_o property_n be_v a_o evil_a inclination_n tend_v only_o to_o sin_n which_o therefore_o be_v call_v sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o we_o and_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n in_o our_o member_n that_o powerful_o subdue_v and_o captivate_v we_o to_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n rom_n 7.20_o 23._o it_o have_v a_o fix_a propensity_n to_o lust_n against_o the_o law_n without_o any_o deliberation_n and_o therefore_o its_o lusting_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prevent_v by_o any_o diligence_n or_o watchfulness_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o indeed_o can_v it_o be_v how_o vain_a
then_o be_v it_o to_o plead_v that_o they_o can_v do_v good_a if_o they_o will_v when_o their_o mind_n and_o will_n itself_o be_v enslave_v to_o sin_n a_o four_o property_n be_v subjection_n to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n that_o have_v blind_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o that_o believe_v not_o 2._o cor._n 4.4_o and_o will_v certain_o conquer_v all_o that_o he_o sight_v with_o upon_o his_o own_o dunghill_n that_o be_v in_o a_o natural_a state_n and_o from_o all_o these_o property_n we_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o it_o have_v the_o property_n never_o to_o be_v good_a to_o be_v stark_o dead_a in_o sin_n ephes_n 2.1_o according_a to_o the_o sentence_n denounce_v against_o the_o first_o sin_n of_o mankind_n in_o adam_n in_o the_o day_n that_o thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v sure_o die_v gen._n 2.17_o for_o you_o can_v no_o more_o bring_v it_o to_o holiness_n by_o any_o the_o most_o vehement_a motive_n and_o endeavour_n than_o you_o can_v bring_v a_o dead_a carcase_n to_o life_n by_o chafe_v and_o rub_v it_o you_o can_v stir_v up_o no_o strength_n or_o fortify_v grace_n in_o the_o natural_a man_n by_o such_o motive_n and_o endeavour_n because_o there_o be_v no_o strength_n in_o he_o to_o be_v stir_v up_o rom._n 5.6_o though_o you_o do_v all_o that_o lie_v in_o you_o to_o the_o utmost_a while_o you_o be_v in_o this_o flesh_n you_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o sin_n for_o there_o be_v no_o good_a lie_v in_o you_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n show_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n i_o know_v that_o in_o i_o that_o be_v in_o my_o flesh_n dwell_v no_o good_a thing_n rom._n 7.18_o six_o we_o have_v no_o good_a ground_n to_o trust_v on_o christ_n to_o help_v we_o to_o will_v or_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o while_o we_o continue_v in_o our_o natural_a state_n or_o to_o imagine_v that_o freedom_n of_o will_n to_o holiness_n be_v restore_v to_o we_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n for_o as_o it_o have_v be_v already_o show_v christ_n aim_v at_o a_o high_a end_n in_o his_o incarnation_n death_n and_o resurrection_n than_o the_o restore_n the_o decay_n and_o ruin_n of_o our_o natural_a state_n he_o aim_v to_o advance_v we_o to_o a_o new_a state_n more_o excellent_a than_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n ever_o be_v by_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o himself_o that_o we_o may_v live_v to_o god_n not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o a_o natural_a freewill_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n live_v and_o act_v in_o we_o so_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o our_o natural_a state_n be_v irrecoverable_a and_o desperate_a because_o christ_n the_o only_a saviour_n do_v not_o aim_v at_o the_o recovery_n of_o it_o it_o be_v neither_o holy_a nor_o happy_a but_o subject_a to_o sin_n and_o to_o all_o misery_n as_o long_o as_o it_o remain_v even_o those_o that_o be_v in_o a_o new_a state_n in_o christ_n and_o do_v serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n with_o their_o mind_n do_v yet_o with_o their_o flesh_n serve_v the_o law_n of_o sin_n rom._n 7.25_o as_o far_o as_o it_o remain_v in_o they_o it_o lu_v against_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.17_o and_o it_o remain_v dead_a because_o of_o sin_n even_o when_o the_o spirit_n be_v life_n to_o they_o because_o of_o righteousness_n rom._n 8.10_o and_o must_v be_v whole_o abolish_v by_o death_n before_o we_o can_v be_v perfect_v in_o that_o holiness_n and_o happiness_n that_o be_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n after_o god_n have_v promise_v salvation_n by_o christ_n the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n he_o place_v cherubim_n and_o a_o flame_a sword_n to_o keep_v man_n out_o of_o paradise_n thereby_o teach_v he_o that_o his_o first_o state_n be_v lose_v without_o hope_n and_o that_o the_o happiness_n intend_v for_o he_o be_v whole_o new_a our_o old_a natural_a man_n be_v not_o revive_v and_o reform_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o crucify_v together_o with_o he_o and_o therefore_o to_o be_v abolish_v and_o destroy_v out_o of_o we_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n rom._n 6.6_o it_o be_v like_o the_o part_n of_o a_o garment_n infect_v with_o the_o plague_n of_o leprosy_n which_o be_v to_o be_v rend_v off_o as_o incurable_a that_o the_o garment_n may_v be_v clean_a levit._n 13.56_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o we_o we_o be_v reprobate_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o i_o e._n we_o be_v in_o a_o state_n which_o god_n have_v reject_v from_o partake_v of_o his_o salvation_n so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v any_o assistance_n from_o god_n to_o make_v we_o holy_a in_o it_o but_o rather_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o it_o seven_o this_o do_v not_o at_o all_o discharge_v those_o that_o be_v in_o a_o natural_a state_n from_o obligation_n to_o holiness_n of_o life_n nor_o render_v they_o excusable_a for_o their_o sin_n at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o god_n have_v make_v man_n upright_o but_o they_o seek_v many_o invention_n eccles_n 7.29_o observe_v well_o the_o word_n of_o this_o text_n and_o you_o will_v find_v that_o all_o they_o who_o have_v seek_v out_o many_o invention_n rather_o than_o upright_o walk_v be_v comprehend_v in_o man_n that_o be_v at_o first_o make_v upright_o and_o man_n in_o the_o text_n signify_v all_o mankind_n the_o first_o adam_n be_v all_o mankind_n as_o jacob_n and_o esau_n be_v two_o nation_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o rebecca_n gen._n 25.23_o god_n make_v we_o all_o in_o our_o first_o parent_n according_a to_o his_o own_o image_n able_a and_o incline_v to_o do_v his_o law_n and_o in_o that_o pure_a nature_n our_o obligation_n to_o obedience_n be_v first_o lay_v upon_o we_o and_o the_o first_o wilful_a transgression_n whereby_o our_o first_o parent_n bereave_v themselves_o of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n be_v our_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o they_o for_o in_o one_o man_n adam_n all_o have_v sin_v and_o so_o death_n be_v pass_v upon_o all_o rom._n 5.12_o because_o all_o mankind_n be_v in_o adam_n loin_n when_o the_o first_o sin_n be_v commit_v even_o as_o levi_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v pay_v tithe_n in_o abraham_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v because_o when_o his_o father_n abraham_n pay_v tithe_n to_o melchizedeck_v he_o be_v yet_o in_o his_o loin_n heb._n 7.9_o 10._o that_o promise_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v not_o charge_v the_o iniquity_n of_o parent_n upon_o their_o child_n be_v a_o promise_n belong_v to_o the_o new_a covenant_n confirm_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v yea_o and_o amen_o to_o we_o only_o in_o christ_n in_o who_o we_o have_v another_o nature_n than_o that_o which_o our_o parent_n convey_v to_o we_o so_o that_o we_o can_v just_o claim_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o in_o our_o old_a natural_a state_n jer._n 31.29_o 30_o 31._o &_o 2_o cor._n 1.20_o those_o that_o account_v their_o impotency_n a_o sufficient_a plea_n to_o excuse_v they_o or_o other_o show_v that_o they_o be_v never_o true_o humble_v for_o that_o great_a wilful_a transgression_n of_o all_o mankind_n in_o the_o loin_n of_o adam_n inability_n to_o pay_v debt_n excuse_v not_o a_o debtor_n that_o have_v lavish_v away_o his_o estate_n neither_o do_v drunkenness_n excuse_v the_o mad_a act_n of_o a_o drunkard_n but_o rather_o aggravate_v his_o sin_n and_o our_o impotency_n consist_v not_o in_o a_o mere_a want_n of_o a_o executive_a power_n but_o in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o willing_a mind_n to_o practise_v true_a holiness_n and_o righteousness_n natural_o we_o love_v it_o not_o we_o like_v it_o not_o but_o lust_n against_o it_o gal._n 5.17_o and_o hate_v the_o light_n john_n 3.20_o if_o man_n in_o a_o natural_a state_n have_v a_o hearty_a love_n and_o like_n to_o true_a holiness_n and_o a_o desire_n and_o serious_a endeavour_n to_o practise_v it_o out_o of_o hearty_a love_n and_o yet_o fail_v in_o the_o event_n than_o they_o may_v under_o some_o pretence_n plead_v for_o their_o excuse_n as_o some_o do_v for_o they_o that_o they_o be_v compel_v to_o sin_n by_o a_o inevitable_a fate_n but_o none_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o plead_v any_o such_o thing_n for_o their_o excuse_n because_o none_o endeavour_v to_o practise_v true_a holiness_n out_o of_o hearty_a love_n to_o it_o until_o the_o good_a work_n be_v begin_v in_o their_o soul_n and_o when_o god_n have_v begin_v he_o will_v perfect_v it_o phil._n 1.6_o and_o will_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n accept_v their_o ready_a mind_n though_o they_o fall_v short_a in_o performance_n 2_o cor._n 8.12_o how_o abominable_a then_o and_o filthy_a be_v man_n that_o drink_v up_o iniquity_n we_o water_n job_n 15.16_o that_o can_v practice_v holiness_n because_o he_o will_v not_o this_o be_v their_o just_a condemnation_n that_o
they_o love_v darkness_n rather_o light_a they_o deserve_v to_o be_v partaker_n with_o the_o devil_n in_o torment_n as_o they_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o evil_a lust_n and_o their_o inability_n to_o do_v good_a will_v no_o more_o excuse_v they_o than_o it_o excuse_v the_o devil_n eight_o neither_o will_v this_o assertion_n make_v it_o a_o vain_a thing_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o natural_a people_n and_o to_o exhort_v they_o to_o true_a repentance_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n for_o their_o conversion_n and_o salvation_n for_o the_o design_n of_o our_o preach_a be_v not_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o holiness_n in_o their_o natural_a state_n but_o to_o raise_v they_o above_o it_o and_o to_o present_v they_o perfect_a in_o christ_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o duty_n col._n 1.28_o and_o though_o they_o can_v perform_v those_o duty_n by_o their_o natural_a strength_n yet_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v effectual_a for_o their_o conversion_n and_o salvation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o accompany_v the_o preach_a of_o it_o to_o quicken_v those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o to_o create_v they_o a_o new_a in_o christ_n by_o give_v to_o they_o repentance_n unto_o life_n and_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n the_o gospel_n come_v to_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o word_n but_o also_o in_o power_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o such_o assurance_n that_o they_o receive_v it_o with_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o thess_n 5.6_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o give_v life_n 2._o cor._n 3.6_o 8._o it_o be_v mighty_a through_o god_n 2_o cor._n 10.4_o it_o depend_v not_o at_o all_o upon_o the_o power_n of_o our_o freewill_n to_o make_v it_o successful_a for_o our_o conversion_n but_o it_o convey_v into_o the_o soul_n that_o life_n and_o power_n whereby_o they_o receive_v and_o obey_v it_o christ_n can_v make_v those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n to_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o live_v john_n 5.25_o therefore_o he_o can_v speak_v to_o they_o by_o his_o gospel_n and_o command_v they_o to_o repent_v and_o believe_v with_o good_a success_n as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v say_v to_o dead_a carcase_n tabytha_n cumi_fw-la mark_v 5.41_o lazarus_n come_v forth_o john_n 11_o 43_o 44._o and_o to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o go_v unto_o thy_o house_n matth._n 9.6_o nine_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o the_o example_n of_o heathen_a philosopher_n or_o any_o jew_n or_o christian_n by_o outward_a profession_n that_o have_v live_v without_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n shall_v move_v we_o by_o their_o wise_a say_n and_o renown_v attainment_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o devotion_n and_o morality_n to_o recede_v from_o this_o truth_n that_o have_v be_v so_o full_o confirm_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v we_o not_o cause_n to_o judge_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n while_o he_o be_v a_o zealous_a pharisee_fw-mi and_o at_o least_o some_o few_o of_o the_o great_a multitude_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o his_o time_n that_o be_v zealous_a of_o the_o law_n and_o have_v the_o instruction_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n attain_v as_o near_o to_o that_o true_a holiness_n as_o the_o heathen_a philosopher_n or_o any_o other_o in_o their_o natural_a state_n yet_o paul_n after_o he_o be_v enlighten_v with_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n judge_v himself_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n in_o his_o high_a former_a attainment_n though_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o he_o be_v blameless_a touch_v the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v in_o the_o law_n and_o he_o find_v it_o necessary_a to_o begin_v to_o live_v to_o god_n in_o a_o new_a way_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o to_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o all_o his_o former_a attainment_n and_o to_o count_v they_o but_o dung_n that_o he_o may_v win_v christ_n 1_o tim._n 1.15_o phil._n 3.6_o 7_o 8._o and_o none_o of_o the_o great_a multitude_n of_o jew_n that_o follow_v after_o the_o law_n of_o righteousness_n do_v ever_o attain_v unto_o it_o while_o they_o seek_v it_o not_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n rom._n 9.31_o 32._o what_o performance_n be_v great_a in_o outward_a appearance_n than_o for_o a_o man_n to_o give_v all_o his_o good_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o to_o give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n allow_v we_o to_o suppose_v that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v without_o true_a charity_n and_o therefore_o without_o any_o true_a holiness_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o life_n 1_o cor._n 13.3_o man_n in_o a_o natural_a state_n may_v have_v strong_a conviction_n of_o the_o infinite_a power_n wisdom_n justice_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v and_o the_o everlasting_a happiness_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o torment_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o these_o conviction_n may_v stir_v they_o up_o not_o only_o to_o make_v a_o high_a profession_n and_o to_o utter_v rare_a say_n concern_v god_n and_o godliness_n but_o also_o to_o labour_v with_o great_a earnestness_n to_o avoid_v all_o know_a sin_n to_o subdue_v their_o lust_n to_o perform_v universal_a obedience_n to_o god_n in_o all_o know_a duty_n and_o to_o serve_v he_o with_o their_o life_n and_o estate_n to_o the_o utmost_a and_o to_o extort_v out_o of_o their_o heart_n some_o kind_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o godliness_n that_o if_o possible_a they_o may_v escape_v the_o terrible_a torment_n of_o hell_n and_o procure_v everlasting_a happiness_n by_o their_o endeavour_n yet_o all_o their_o love_n to_o god_n be_v but_o force_v and_o feign_v they_o have_v no_o hearty_a like_n to_o god_n or_o his_o service_n they_o account_v he_o a_o hard_a master_n and_o his_o commandment_n grievous_a and_o they_o repine_v and_o fret_v inward_o at_o the_o burden_n of_o they_o and_o be_v it_o not_o for_o fear_v of_o everlasting_a fire_n they_o will_v little_o regard_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n and_o they_o will_v be_v glad_a if_o they_o may_v have_v the_o liberty_n to_o enjoy_v their_o lust_n without_o danger_n of_o damnation_n the_o high_a preferment_n of_o those_o that_o be_v bear_v only_o after_o the_o flesh_n in_o abraham_n family_n be_v but_o to_o be_v child_n of_o the_o bondwoman_n gal._n 4.23_o and_o though_o they_o do_v more_o in_o god_n service_n than_o many_o of_o his_o dear_a child_n yet_o god_n accept_v not_o their_o service_n because_o their_o best_a performance_n be_v slavish_a without_o any_o childlike_a affection_n towards_o god_n and_o no_o better_a than_o glister_a sin_n and_o yet_o these_o natural_a man_n be_v not_o at_o all_o beholden_a to_o the_o goodness_n of_o their_o nature_n for_o these_o counterfeit_n show_v of_o holiness_n or_o for_o the_o least_o abstain_v from_o the_o gross_a sin_n if_o god_n shall_v leave_v man_n full_o to_o their_o own_o natural_a corruption_n and_o to_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n as_o they_o deserve_v all_o show_n of_o religion_n and_o morality_n will_v be_v quick_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o we_o shall_v grow_v past_a feel_n in_o wickedness_n and_o like_a to_o the_o cannibal_n who_o be_v as_o good_a by_o nature_n as_o ourselves_o but_o god_n that_o can_v restrain_v the_o burn_a of_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n without_o quench_v it_o and_o the_o flow_a of_o water_n without_o change_v its_o nature_n do_v also_o restrain_v the_o work_n of_o natural_a corruption_n without_o mortify_v it_o and_o through_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o power_n he_o make_v his_o enemy_n to_o yield_v feign_v obedience_n to_o he_o psal_n 66.3_o and_o to_o do_v many_o thing_n good_a for_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o though_o they_o can_v do_v nothing_o in_o a_o right_n holy_a manner_n he_o have_v appoint_v several_a mean_n to_o restrain_v our_o corruption_n as_o the_o law_n terror_n of_o conscience_n terrible_a judgement_n and_o reward_n in_o this_o life_n magistrate_n humane_a law_n labour_n for_o necessary_n food_n and_o raiment_n and_o those_o gospel_n mean_v that_o be_v effectual_a for_o sanctification_n serve_v also_o for_o restraint_n of_o sin_n god_n have_v gracious_a end_n in_o this_o restraint_n of_o sin_n that_o his_o church_n may_v be_v preserve_v and_o his_o gospel_n preach_v in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o these_o natural_a man_n may_v be_v in_o a_o better_a capacity_n to_o receive_v the_o instruction_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o such_o of_o they_o that_o be_v choose_v may_v in_o due_a time_n be_v convert_v and_o that_o those_o of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o true_o convert_v may_v enjoy_v more_o of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n here_o and_o suffer_v the_o less_o torment_n hereafter_o as_o vile_a and_o wicked_a as_o the_o world_n be_v we_o have_v cause_n to_o praise_v and_o to_o magnify_v the_o free_a
goodness_n of_o god_n that_o it_o be_v no_o worse_o direct_v vi_o those_o that_o endeavour_v to_o perform_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o all_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n as_o the_o condition_n whereby_o they_o be_v to_o procure_v for_o themselves_o a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o salvation_n and_o a_o good_a ground_n to_o trust_v on_o he_o for_o the_o same_o do_v seek_v their_o salvation_n by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v sincere_o any_o true_a holy_a obedience_n by_o all_o such_o endeavour_n explication_n for_o the_o understanding_n the_o term_n of_o this_o direction_n note_v here_o that_o i_o take_v salvation_n as_o comprehend_v justification_n as_o well_o as_o other_o save_v benefit_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n as_o comprehend_v holy_a resolution_n as_o well_o as_o the_o fulfil_n of_o they_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n that_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o religion_n be_v prone_a to_o imagine_v that_o the_o sure_a way_n to_o establish_v the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n be_v to_o make_v it_o the_o procure_a condition_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o all_o happiness_n this_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o various_a false_a religion_n that_o have_v prevail_v most_o in_o the_o world_n in_o this_o way_n the_o heathen_n be_v bring_v to_o their_o best_a devotion_n and_o morality_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o those_o that_o violate_v several_a of_o the_o great_a duty_n to_o god_n and_o their_o neighbour_n be_v worthy_a of_o death_n and_o by_o their_o conscience_n accuse_v or_o excuse_v they_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o they_o rom._n 1.32_o &_o 2.14_o 15._o our_o conscience_n be_v inform_v by_o the_o common_a light_n of_o natural_a reason_n that_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o require_v we_o to_o perform_v these_o duty_n that_o we_o may_v avoid_v his_o wrath_n and_o enjoy_v his_o favour_n and_o we_o can_v find_v any_o better_a way_n than_o this_o to_o obtain_v happiness_n or_o to_o stir_v up_o ourselves_o to_o duty_n without_o divine_a revelation_n yet_o because_o our_o own_o conscience_n testify_v that_o we_o often_o fail_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o duty_n we_o be_v incline_v by_o self-love_n to_o persuade_v ourselves_o that_o our_o sincere_a endeavour_n to_o do_v the_o best_a we_o can_v shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o procure_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o pardon_v for_o all_o our_o fail_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o persuasion_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o condition_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n have_v its_o original_n from_o our_o corrupt_a natural_a reason_n and_o be_v part_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o a_o mystery_n that_o hide_a wisdom_n god_n ordain_v before_o the_o world_n to_o our_o glory_n it_o be_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o have_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o which_o the_o natural_a man_n can_v receive_v for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o neither_o can_v he_o know_v they_o for_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v 1_o cor._n 2.6_o 7_o 9_o 14._o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o foolishness_n of_o preach_v whereby_o it_o please_v god_n to_o save_v they_o that_o believe_v 1_o cor._n 10.21_o and_o though_o we_o have_v a_o better_a way_n reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o holiness_n itself_o and_o all_o salvation_n without_o any_o procure_a condition_n of_o work_n by_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n grace_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v very_o difficult_a to_o persuade_v man_n out_o of_o a_o way_n that_o they_o be_v natural_o addict_v to_o and_o that_o have_v forestall_v and_o captivate_v their_o judgement_n and_o be_v breed_v in_o their_o bone_n and_o therefore_o can_v easy_o be_v get_v out_o of_o the_o flesh_n most_o of_o those_o that_o live_v under_o the_o hear_n and_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o bring_v to_o hate_v sin_n as_o sin_n and_o to_o love_v godliness_n for_o itself_o though_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v love_v it_o hearty_o the_o only_a mean_n that_o they_o can_v take_v to_o bring_v themselves_o to_o it_o be_v to_o stir_v up_o themselves_o to_o a_o hypocritical_a practice_n in_o their_o old_a natural_a way_n that_o they_o may_v avoid_v hell_n and_o get_v heaven_n by_o their_o work_n and_o their_o own_o conscience_n witness_v that_o the_o zeal_n and_o love_n that_o they_o have_v for_o god_n and_o godliness_n their_o self-denial_n sorrow_n for_o sin_n strictness_n of_o life_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n force_v and_o extort_a from_o they_o by_o slavish_a fear_n and_o mercenary_a hope_n so_o that_o they_o be_v afraid_a that_o if_o they_o shall_v trust_v on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n by_o freegrace_n without_o work_n the_o fire_n of_o their_o zeal_n and_o devotion_n will_v be_v quick_o extinguish_v and_o they_o shall_v grow_v careless_a in_o religion_n and_o let_v loose_v the_o reins_o to_o their_o lust_n and_o bring_v certain_a damnation_n upon_o themselves_o this_o move_v they_o to_o account_v they_o the_o only_a boanerges_n and_o powerful_a preacher_n that_o preach_v little_a or_o none_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freegrace_n but_o rather_o spend_v their_o pain_n in_o rebuke_v sin_n and_o urge_v people_n to_o get_v christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n by_o their_o work_n and_o thunder_a hell_n and_o damnation_n against_o sinner_n it_o have_v be_v far_o observe_v that_o some_o that_o have_v contend_v much_o for_o salvation_n by_o freegrace_n without_o any_o condition_n of_o work_n have_v fall_v into_o antinomian_a opinion_n and_o licentious_a practice_n the_o experience_n of_o these_o thing_n have_v much_o prevail_v with_o some_o learned_a and_o zealous_a man_n of_o late_a among_o ourselves_o to_o recede_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n without_o work_n former_o profess_v unanimous_o and_o strong_o defend_v by_o the_o protestant_n against_o the_o papist_n as_o a_o principal_a article_n of_o true_a religion_n they_o have_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o such_o a_o way_n of_o justification_n be_v ineffectual_a yea_o destructive_a to_o sanctification_n and_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n can_v be_v establish_v against_o antinomian_a dotage_n and_o prevail_a lust_n except_o it_o be_v make_v the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o so_o of_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n therefore_o they_o conclude_v that_o god_n have_v certain_o make_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o new-model_n the_o protestant_a doctrine_n and_o to_o interpret_v the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o a_o way_n agreeable_a and_o subservient_fw-fr to_o this_o their_o only_a sure_a foundation_n of_o holiness_n but_o i_o hope_v to_o show_v that_o this_o their_o imagine_a sure_a foundation_n of_o holiness_n be_v never_o lay_v by_o the_o holy_a god_n but_o that_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o error_n in_o the_o foundation_n pernicious_a to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o to_o holiness_n of_o life_n i_o account_v it_o a_o error_n especial_o to_o be_v abhor_v and_o detest_a because_o we_o be_v so_o prone_a to_o be_v seduce_v by_o it_o and_o because_o it_o be_v a_o error_n whereby_o satan_n transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o a_o patron_n of_o holiness_n have_v great_o withstand_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o persecute_v it_o out_o of_o zeal_n for_o the_o law_n and_o have_v since_o prevail_v to_o set_v up_o and_o maintain_v popery_n whereby_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n work_v apace_o in_o these_o day_n to_o corrupt_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n among_o the_o protestant_n and_o to_o heal_v the_o deadly_a wound_n that_o be_v give_v to_o popery_n by_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n without_o work_n one_o thing_n assert_v in_o the_o direction_n against_o this_o fundamental_a error_n be_v that_o it_o be_v a_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n as_o reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n though_o the_o maintainer_n of_o it_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o only_a way_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o so_o we_o may_v not_o doubt_v of_o its_o power_n and_o efficacy_n for_o our_o justification_n sanctification_n and_o our_o whole_a salvation_n their_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o law_n as_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n require_v we_o to_o do_v all_o its_o commandment_n perfect_o that_o we_o may_v live_v whereas_o they_o plead_v only_o for_o a_o mild_a condition_n of_o sincere_a do_v
that_o we_o may_v live_v and_o they_o plead_v not_o for_o do_v of_o duty_n as_o oblige_v thereunto_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o law_n give_v of_o god_n by_o moses_n but_o only_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n neither_o do_v they_o plead_v for_o salvation_n by_o sincere_a obedience_n without_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o christ_n and_o through_o his_o merit_n and_o righteousness_n and_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o both_o salvation_n itself_o and_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v give_v to_o they_o free_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o all_o be_v of_o grace_n they_o acknowledge_v also_o that_o their_o salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n because_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v wrought_v in_o they_o by_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o be_v include_v in_o he_o nature_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o entire_a condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o some_o call_v it_o the_o resignate_a act_n of_o faith_n but_o all_o these_o reason_n be_v but_o a_o fallacious_a vizard_n upon_o a_o legal_a way_n of_o salvation_n to_o make_v it_o look_v like_o pure_a gospel_n as_o i_o shall_v evince_v by_o the_o follow_a particular_n first_o all_z that_o seek_v salvation_n by_o the_o sincere_a performance_n of_o good_a work_n as_o the_o procure_a condition_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n for_o seek_v righteousness_n by_o the_o work_v of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n rom._n 9.32_o and_o for_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n gal._n 5.4_o this_o one_o assertion_n if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v be_v enough_o to_o pluck_v off_o the_o fallacious_a vizard_n from_o the_o condition_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n and_o to_o make_v man_n abhor_v it_o as_o a_o damn_v legal_a doctrine_n that_o bereave_v its_o follower_n of_o all_o salvation_n by_o christ_n and_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o person_n that_o wary_o consider_v a_o point_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n for_o their_o salvation_n the_o jew_n and_o judaize_v christian_n against_o who_o the_o apostle_n chief_o dispute_v in_o this_o whole_a controversy_n do_v not_o profess_v any_o hope_n of_o be_v justify_v by_o perfect_a obedience_n according_a to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n but_o only_o by_o such_o obedience_n as_o they_o account_v to_o be_v sincere_a and_o not_o hypocritical_a and_o we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o judaize_v galatian_n have_v learn_v by_o the_o gospel_n to_o distinguish_v sincere_a obedience_n from_o hypocrisy_n the_o jewish_a religion_n bind_v all_o that_o profess_v it_o to_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v sinner_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o anniversary_n humiliation_n at_o the_o day_n of_o atonement_n and_o several_a other_o right_n of_o the_o law_n and_o many_o clear_a testimony_n in_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o psal_n 143.2_o prov._n 10.9_o eccles_n 7.20_o yet_o they_o know_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n in_o sincerity_n and_o uprightness_n and_o that_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o sincere_a obedience_n for_o which_o cause_n they_o may_v better_o put_v it_o for_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n than_o we_o can_v of_o the_o gospel_n psal_n 51.6_o 10._o deut._n 6.5_o deut._n 30.10_o so_o that_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v dispute_v against_o those_o that_o hold_v only_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o justification_n he_o have_v contend_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n and_o they_o may_v as_o ready_o judge_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o justification_n under_o the_o law_n as_o we_o can_v judge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o condition_n under_o the_o gospel_n neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n condemn_v they_o mere_o for_o account_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n as_o give_v by_o moses_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o their_o justification_n but_o more_o general_o for_o seek_v salvation_n by_o their_o own_o work_n and_o he_o allege_v against_o they_o that_o abrabam_fw-la who_o live_v before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o any_o of_o his_o work_n though_o he_o do_v perform_v sincere_a obedience_n and_o that_o david_n who_o live_v under_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o his_o work_n though_o he_o perform_v sincere_a obedience_n and_o be_v as_o much_o bind_v to_o obey_v the_o law_n give_v by_o moses_n as_o we_o be_v to_o obey_v any_o command_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n rom._n 4.2_o 3_o 5_o 6._o neither_o do_v he_o condemn_v they_o for_o seek_v their_o salvation_n only_o by_o work_n without_o respect_v at_o all_o the_o grace_n and_o salvation_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o judaize_v galatian_n be_v yet_o professor_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o salvation_n of_o christ_n though_o they_o think_v obedience_n to_o the_o law_n a_o necessary_a condition_n for_o the_o partake_n of_o it_o as_o also_o many_o other_o judaise_v believer_n do_v and_o doubtless_o they_o account_v themselves_o oblige_v thereunto_o not_o only_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o moses_n but_o of_o christ_n also_o who_o they_o own_v as_o their_o lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a it_o be_v no_o damn_v error_n to_o account_v moses_n law_n oblige_v at_o that_o time_n for_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v sound_a believer_n hold_v the_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n to_o be_v in_o force_n at_o that_o time_n and_o paul_n be_v tender_a towards_o they_o in_o it_o act_n 20.20_o 21._o act_n 15.5_o and_o other_o jew_n seek_v justification_n not_o only_o by_o their_o sincere_a work_n but_o also_o by_o trust_v on_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o abraham_n and_o on_o their_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v type_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o most_o legal_a pharisees_n will_v thank_v god_n for_o their_o good_a work_n as_o proceed_v from_o his_o grace_n luke_n 18.11_o and_o they_o can_v as_o well_o acknowledge_v their_o salvation_n to_o be_v by_o faith_n as_o the_o assertor_n of_o salvation_n by_o sincere_a obedience_n can_v in_o these_o day_n for_o they_o account_v that_o their_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v wrought_v in_o they_o by_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o contain_v gospel_n as_o well_o as_o legal_a doctrine_n in_o it_o and_o therefore_o that_o it_o must_v be_v include_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n if_o faith_n be_v take_v for_o the_o condition_n of_o their_o whole_a salvation_n let_v the_o assertor_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n learn_v from_o hence_o that_o they_o be_v build_v again_o that_o judaisme_n which_o the_o apostle_n paul_n destroy_v whereby_o the_o jew_n stumble_v at_o christ_n rom._n 9.32_o and_o the_o galatian_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o fall_v from_o christ_n and_o grace_n gal._n 5.2_o 4._o and_o let_v they_o beware_v of_o fall_v under_o that_o curse_n which_o he_o have_v denounce_v on_o this_o very_a occasion_n against_o any_o man_n or_o angel_n that_o shall_v preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v gal._n 1.8_o 9_o second_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n do_v not_o at_o all_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o one_o require_v perfect_a do_v the_o other_o only_o sincere_a do_v but_o in_o this_o that_o the_o one_o require_v do_v the_o other_o no_o do_v but_o believe_v for_o life_n and_o salvation_n their_o term_n be_v different_a not_o only_o in_o degree_n but_o in_o their_o whole_a nature_n the_o apostle_n paul_n oppose_v the_o believe_v require_v in_o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o do_v for_o life_n as_o the_o condition_n proper_a to_o the_o law_n gal._n 3.12_o the_o law_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n but_o the_o man_n that_o do_v they_o shall_v live_v in_o they_o rom._n 4.5_o to_o he_o that_o work_v not_o but_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a his_o faith_n be_v count_v for_o righteousness_n if_o we_o seek_v salvation_n by_o never_o so_o easy_a and_o mild_a a_o condition_n of_o work_n we_o do_v thereby_o bring_v ourselves_o under_o the_o term_n of_o the_o law_n and_o do_v become_v debtor_n to_o fulfil_v the_o whole_a law_n in_o perfection_n though_o we_o intend_v to_o engage_v ourselves_o only_o to_o fulsill_n it_o in_o part_n gal._n 5.3_o for_o the_o law_n be_v a_o complete_a declaration_n of_o the_o only_a term_n whereby_o god_n will_v judge_v all_o that_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o despair_v of_o procure_v salvation_n by_o any_o of_o their_o own_o work_n and_o to_o receive_v it_o as_o a_o gift_n free_o give_v to_o they_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n so_o that_o all_o that_o seek_v salvation_n right_a or_o wrong_n know_o or_o ignorant_o by_o any_o work_n less_o or_o more_o whether_o invent_v by_o their_o own_o superstition_n or_o command_v of_o god_n in_o
can_v any_o man_n rational_o expect_v strength_n to_o obey_v sincere_o by_o follow_v a_o doctrine_n that_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o promise_v it_o the_o true_a gospel_n be_v of_o a_o more_o benign_a nature_n for_o it_o promise_v that_o god_n will_v pour_v out_o of_o his_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n act_v 2.17_o and_o will_v put_v his_o law_n in_o our_o mind_n and_o write_v they_o in_o our_o beart_n heb._n 8.10_o and_o will_v cause_v we_o to_o walk_v in_o his_o statute_n that_o we_o shall_v keep_v his_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o ezeck_n 36.27_o this_o word_n of_o god_n grace_n that_o require_v not_o holiness_n of_o we_o as_o a_o condition_n but_o promise_v it_o to_o we_o as_o a_o free-gift_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o only_a doctrine_n that_o be_v able_a to_o build_v we_o up_o and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o inheritance_n among_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v act_v 20.32_o see_v it_o please_v god_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o holiness_n by_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n we_o may_v reasonable_o expect_v that_o god_n shall_v work_v upon_o we_o suitable_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v give_v by_o a_o give_a doctrine_n and_o exact_v by_o a_o exact_v doctrine_n four_o the_o way_n of_o procure_a life_n and_o happiness_n by_o the_o condition_n of_o perfect_a or_o sincere_a work_n be_v not_o a_o rational_a method_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o fall_a man_n though_o it_o be_v good_a for_o the_o preserve_n of_o life_n before_o the_o fall_n it_o prescribe_v the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o holiness_n to_o recover_v a_o man_n dead_a in_o sin_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n arise_v up_o and_o walk_v and_o then_o you_o shall_v be_v whole_a and_o able_a to_o walk_v we_o sometime_o say_v jest_o to_o a_o child_n that_o be_v fall_v on_o the_o ground_n come_v hither_o and_o i_o will_v help_v thou_o up_o but_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v to_o one_o that_o be_v cast_v on_o his_o bed_n by_o a_o dead_a palsy_n we_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o mock_v and_o cruel_a insult_a over_o the_o afflict_a those_o that_o be_v humble_v and_o make_v sensible_a of_o their_o original_a sin_n and_o natural_a deadness_n know_v that_o they_o must_v first_o live_v by_o the_o spirit_n before_o they_o can_v act_v holy_o gal_n 5.25_o they_o will_v inquire_v how_o shall_v we_o have_v strength_n to_o perform_v the_o duty_n require_v if_o you_o answer_v that_o they_o must_v trust_v in_o god_n and_o christ_n to_o help_v they_o they_o may_v ready_o reply_v they_o have_v no_o sure_a ground_n to_o trust_v on_o god_n or_o christ_n for_o any_o save_a grace_n according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n before_o they_o have_v perform_v this_o condition_n at_o least_o in_o a_o sincere_a resolution_n of_o obedience_n and_o that_o they_o be_v as_o unable_a to_o bring_v their_o heart_n to_o such_o a_o resolution_n as_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v to_o raise_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o grave_a take_v another_o instance_n the_o method_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n be_v you_o must_v love_v god_n first_o and_o then_o on_o that_o condition_n he_o will_v love_v you_o again_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o love_v god_n because_o he_o love_v we_o first_o 1_o joh._n 4.19_o and_o if_o god_n suspend_v his_o love_n to_o we_o upon_o any_o condition_n our_o love_n to_o he_o will_v not_o be_v absolute_a but_o suspend_v upon_o the_o same_o condition_n and_o no_o way_n contrary_a to_o a_o actual_a hate_v of_o he_o 5th_o the_o law_n be_v so_o far_o from_o heal_v our_o sinful_a corruption_n that_o it_o prove_v rather_o a_o occasion_n of_o sinful_a motion_n and_o act_n in_o those_o that_o seek_v salvation_n by_o the_o work_v of_o it_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o power_n of_o our_o natural_a corruption_n which_o be_v stir_v up_o and_o rage_v the_o more_o when_o the_o holy_a and_o just_a law_n of_o god_n be_v set_v in_o opposition_n against_o it_o so_o that_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o the_o law_n but_o in_o our_o own_o heart_n those_o that_o find_v not_o this_o by_o their_o own_o experience_n shall_v believe_v the_o apostle_n paul_n who_o teach_v it_o plain_o and_o that_o from_o his_o own_o experience_n rom._n 7.5_o to_o the_o 14._o he_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v motion_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o law_n in_o a_o fleshly_a state_n and_o that_o sin_n take_v occasion_n by_o the_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v wrought_v in_o he_o all_o manner_n of_o concupiscence_n deceive_v he_o fly_v he_o become_v exceed_v sinful_a and_o that_o without_o the_o law_n he_o be_v alive_a and_o sin_v dead_a but_o when_o the_o commandment_n come_v sin_n revive_v and_o he_o die_v he_o show_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o irreconcilable_a enmity_n and_o contrariety_n betwixt_o his_o sinful_a nature_n and_o the_o law_n the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a but_o i_o be_o carnal_a sell_v under_o sin_n take_v notice_n here_o that_o the_o reason_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o sincere_a obedience_n will_v have_v the_o same_o event_n corrupt_a nature_n be_v contrary_a to_o sincere_a obedience_n as_o well_o as_o perfect_v and_o if_o we_o make_v it_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n sin_n will_v take_v the_o same_o occasion_n by_o it_o to_o become_v exceed_o sinful_a in_o its_o motion_n and_o act_n the_o success_n of_o legal_a doctrine_n upon_o the_o natural_a man_n be_v according_a to_o the_o proverb_n reprove_v not_o a_o scorner_n lest_o he_o hate_v thou_o prov._n 9.8_o rebuke_v a_o mad_a man_n be_v the_o way_n to_o enrage_v he_o and_o such_o be_v the_o natural_a man_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n since_o he_o fall_v out_o of_o his_o right_a mind_n by_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n we_o find_v by_o manifold_a experience_n that_o though_o man_n be_v general_o addict_v to_o the_o principle_n of_o salvation_n by_o work_n yet_o multitude_n of_o of_o they_o hate_v all_o strict_a preacher_n and_o professor_n of_o true_a holiness_n because_o they_o be_v a_o torment_n to_o their_o conscience_n they_o endeavour_v to_o shelter_v themselves_o in_o ignorance_n of_o the_o law_n account_v that_o the_o less_o they_o know_v the_o less_o they_o shall_v answer_v for_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o have_v right_a thing_n prophesy_v unto_o they_o be_v 30.10_o and_o they_o have_v prevail_v general_o in_o the_o world_n to_o darken_v the_o natural_a knowledge_n of_o moral_a duty_n in_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o learn_v they_o by_o divine_a revelation_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n we_o may_v find_v how_o prone_a legal-writer_n be_v to_o corrupt_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n that_o they_o may_v leave_v start_v hole_n for_o their_o corruption_n by_o the_o corrupt_a gloss_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n from_o which_o christ_n do_v vindicate_v it_o matth._n 5._o and_o as_o far_o as_o i_o have_v observe_v none_o more_o endeavour_n to_o discover_v the_o purity_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n than_o those_o that_o seek_v holiness_n and_o salvation_n without_o any_o legal_a condition_n by_o the_o mere_a free_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v but_o a_o mince_n of_o the_o perfection_n require_v in_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o how_o be_v this_o doctrine_n mince_v again_o and_o again_o until_o it_o be_v come_v so_o small_a that_o the_o substance_n of_o all_o true_a obedience_n be_v lose_v without_o any_o far_a practice_n of_o holiness_n a_o willingness_n to_o be_v save_v according_a to_o christ_n term_n or_o a_o consent_n that_o christ_n shall_v be_v our_o lord_n or_o a_o resolution_n to_o obey_v his_o commandment_n which_o be_v little_o more_o than_o ignorant_a man_n trust_v on_o when_o they_o say_v that_o they_o hope_v god_n will_v save_v they_o because_o they_o have_v a_o good_a meaning_n though_o they_o live_v in_o the_o neglect_n of_o all_o religion_n shall_v pass_v with_o many_o for_o enough_o sincere_a obedience_n both_o to_o enter_v they_o into_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o to_o continue_v they_o in_o it_o so_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v account_v breaker_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n while_o so_o much_o can_v be_v pretend_v the_o most_o that_o be_v make_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n shall_v be_v only_o to_o endeavour_v to_o do_v what_o we_o can_v to_o obey_v christ_n command_n though_o all_o that_o the_o most_o can_v do_v be_v nothing_o that_o be_v true_o good_a those_o that_o have_v a_o little_a more_o zeal_n for_o their_o salvation_n by_o work_n be_v prone_a to_o spend_v it_o in_o superstitious_a observance_n because_o they_o suit_v better_o with_o their_o carnal_a nature_n than_o the_o spiritual_a command_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o this_o
themselves_o for_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o so_o they_o may_v make_v their_o peace_n with_o god_n and_o trust_v secure_o on_o christ_n for_o his_o salvation_n but_o all_o resolution_n of_o that_o kind_n be_v vain_a and_o hypocritical_a soon_o break_v than_o make_v those_o that_o know_v the_o plague_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n do_v find_v that_o their_o mind_n be_v enmity_n unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o can_v be_v subject_a unto_o it_o rom._n 8.7_o and_o that_o they_o can_v as_o soon_o remove_v a_o mountain_n as_o give_v up_o themselves_o sincere_o to_o obedience_n before_o they_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o his_o salvation_n and_o for_o the_o gift_n of_o a_o new_a heart_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v enable_v both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n we_o shall_v have_v be_v sufficient_o oblige_v to_o all_o obedient_a purpose_n resolution_n and_o resignation_n if_o christ_n have_v never_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v we_o but_o he_o know_v that_o we_o can_v perform_v nothing_o holy_o except_o he_o make_v we_o first_o partaker_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v never_o obey_v he_o as_o lawgiver_n until_o we_o receive_v he_o as_o saviour_n he_o be_v a_o save_a lord_n trust_v on_o he_o first_o to_o save_v you_o from_o the_o guilt_n and_o power_n of_o sin●_n and_o dominion_n of_o satan_n and_o to_o give_v you_o a_o new_a spiritual_a disposition_n then_o and_o not_o till_o then_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n will_v constrain_v you_o to_o resign_v up_o yourself_o hearty_o to_o live_v to_o he_o that_o die_v for_o you_o 2_o cor._n 5.14_o and_o you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o say_v with_o a_o unfeigned_a resolution_n o_o lord_n true_o i_o be_o thy_o servant_n i_o be_o thy_o servant_n and_o the_o son_n of_o thy_o handmaid_n thou_o have_v loose_v my_o bond_n psal_n 116.16_o four_o it_o seem_v to_o they_o evident_a that_o some_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a before_o we_o can_v trust_v on_o christ_n safe_o for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n because_o our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o that_o if_o we_o forgive_v not_o man_n their_o trespass_n neither_o will_v our_o heavenly_a father_n forgive_v our_o trespass_n and_o direct_v we_o to_o pray_v forgive_v we_o our_o debt_n as_o we_o forgive_v our_o debtor_n mat._n 6.12_o 15._o restitution_n also_o be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o thing_n wrongful_o get_v from_o other_o before_o the_o sacramental_a atonement_n be_v make_v by_o the_o trespass_n offer_v leu._n 6.5_o 7._o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o forgive_n other_o and_o restitution_n according_a to_o our_o ability_n or_o at_o least_o a_o sincere_a desire_n and_o purpose_n so_o to_o do_v be_v very_o close_o join_v with_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o fit_v we_o for_o prayer_n and_o for_o sacramental_a application_n of_o pardon_v grace_n to_o ourselves_o a_o lively_a faith_n can_v be_v without_o these_o fruit_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v pray_v or_o partake_v of_o sacrament_n in_o faith_n without_o they_o but_o yet_o if_o we_o strive_v to_o do_v either_o of_o these_o before_o we_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o our_o pardon_n and_o salvation_n we_o shall_v do_v they_o slavish_o and_o hypocritical_o not_o in_o any_o holy_a acceptable_a manner_n our_o forgive_a other_o will_v not_o be_v accompany_v with_o any_o hearty_a love_n to_o they_o as_o to_o ourselves_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o god_n and_o our_o restitution_n will_v be_v but_o a_o force_a act_n like_o pharaoh_n let_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n go_v or_o like_o judas_n restore_v the_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n be_v compel_v thereunto_o by_o terror_n of_o spirit_n and_o when_o the_o terror_n that_o force_v we_o be_v remove_v we_o shall_v be_v as_o ready_a to_o recall_v our_o forgiveness_n and_o to_o wrong_v other_o again_o as_o pharaoh_n be_v to_o bring_v the_o israelite_n again_o into_o bondage_n after_o he_o have_v let_v they_o go_v exod._n 14.5_o if_o you_o will_v forgive_v other_o hearty_o so_o as_o to_o love_v they_o again_o you_o must_v first_o apprehend_v the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o yourselves_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o then_o you_o will_v be_v able_a according_a to_o the_o apostle_n instruction_n to_o be_v kind_a tender_a heart_a forgive_a one_o another_o even_o as_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n have_v forgive_v you_o ephes_n 4.32_o the_o readiness_n of_o zaccheus_n to_o make_v restitution_n follow_v upon_o a_o discovery_n of_o christ_n love_n to_o he_o and_o his_o joyful_a receive_v christ_n into_o his_o house_n be_v fruit_n whereby_o he_o do_v evidence_n the_o truth_n of_o that_o faith_n that_o be_v already_o wrought_v in_o his_o heart_n 5th_o i_o shall_v reckon_v up_o together_o several_a other_o qualification_n that_o distress_a soul_n will_v find_v in_o themselves_o that_o they_o may_v be_v due_o prepare_v to_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o their_o salvation_n and_o when_o they_o have_v labour_v anxious_o a_o long_a time_n and_o can_v get_v they_o at_o last_o they_o lie_v down_o in_o sorrowful_a despondence_n not_o dare_v to_o apply_v the_o consolation_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n to_o their_o wound_a conscience_n let_v perplex_a soul_n mark_v the_o particular_n and_o observe_v whether_o the_o condition_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n be_v reach_v in_o any_o of_o they_o o_o thou_o afflict_a toss_v with_o tempest_n and_o not_o comfort_v what_o good_a qualification_n be_v it_o that_o thou_o will_v have_v that_o thou_o may_v be_v encourage_v to_o lay_v hold_n on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n it_o be_v likely_a thou_o will_v answer_v in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o thy_o soul_n o_o let_v i_o have_v first_o some_o love_n to_o god_n and_o godliness_n in_o my_o heart_n and_o freedom_n from_o my_o hateful_a heart-rising_n against_o he_o and_o his_o service_n let_v i_o have_v some_o good_a thought_n of_o god_n his_o justice_n mercy_n holiness_n that_o i_o may_v be_v able_a to_o justify_v he_o though_o he_o damn_v i_o and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v fill_v with_o murmur_a and_o hellish_a blasphemy_n in_o my_o mind_n against_o he_o let_v the_o rage_a of_o my_o lust_n be_v abate_v and_o the_o stink_a kennel_n of_o my_o wicked_a heart_n a_o little_a cleanse_v let_v i_o have_v some_o holy_a reverential_a fear_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o a_o panic_n torment_v horror_n i_o will_v be_v more_o affect_v with_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o not_o be_v of_o a_o slight_v heedless_a spirit_n i_o will_v be_v more_o humble_v for_o sin_n loathe_v it_o and_o be_v ashamed_a of_o it_o and_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n not_o mere_o because_o of_o the_o punishment_n but_o because_o it_o grieve_v and_o vex_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n i_o will_v be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o willing_a and_o ingenious_a confession_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o pour_v out_o my_o soul_n to_o the_o lord_n in_o lively_a affectionate_a prayer_n for_o forgiveness_n and_o to_o praise_v and_o glorify_v he_o hearty_o and_o not_o to_o be_v like_o a_o lifeless_a stone_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o prayer_n as_o i_o be_o be_v these_o the_o thing_n thou_o desire_v o_o poor_a distress_a soul_n the_o best_a reply_n i_o can_v make_v for_o thy_o speedy_a comfort_n be_v to_o inform_v thou_o that_o the_o thing_n be_v good_a but_o thy_o desire_n be_v not_o well_o time_v it_o be_v unreasonable_a for_o thou_o to_o expect_v these_o holy_a qualification_n whilst_o thou_o be_v in_o thy_o natural_a state_n under_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n before_o thou_o have_v receive_v the_o atonement_n and_o the_o new_a spiritual_a life_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o name_n thou_o do_v but_o exasperate_v thy_o corruption_n and_o harden_v thy_o heart_n and_o make_v thy_o wound_n to_o stink_v the_o more_o because_o of_o thy_o foolishness_n such_o good_a qualification_n be_v include_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o follow_v after_o it_o so_o that_o they_o can_v possible_o be_v obtain_v before_o thou_o trust_v in_o christ_n for_o thy_o salvation_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v concern_v they_o particular_o in_o their_o order_n a_o love_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o holiness_n be_v include_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v hearty_a without_o it_o act_n faith_n first_o with_o this_o kind_n of_o love_n and_o the_o apprehension_n of_o god_n love_n to_o thy_o soul_n will_v sweet_o allure_v and_o constrain_v thou_o to_o love_n god_n and_o his_o service_n universal_o we_o love_v he_o because_o he_o love_v we_o first_o 1_o joh._n 4.19_o we_o can_v be_v beforehand_o with_o god_n in_o love_n and_o
the_o spirit_n whereby_o we_o be_v make_v good_a tree_n that_o we_o may_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit._n though_o they_o be_v give_v before_o the_o sincere_a practice_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o give_v to_o we_o in_o our_o corrupt_a sinful_a nature_n but_o in_o and_o with_o the_o new_a holy_a nature_n which_o immediate_o produce_v a_o holy_a practice_n though_o it_o must_v necessary_o go_v before_o as_o the_o cause_n before_o the_o effect_n and_o they_o be_v no_o other_o than_o comfort_n of_o those_o spiritual_a benefit_n by_o which_o our_o new_a estate_n and_o nature_n be_v produce_v and_o of_o which_o it_o be_v constitute_v and_o make_v up_o as_o the_o comfort_n of_o redemption_n justification_n adoption_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o like_a neither_o do_v i_o intend_v here_o any_o transport_v or_o ravishment_n of_o joy_n and_o delight_n but_o only_o such_o manner_n of_o comfort_n as_o rational_o strengthen_v in_o some_o measure_n against_o the_o oppression_n of_o fear_n grief_n and_o despair_n which_o we_o be_v liable_a unto_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o natural_a sinfulness_n and_o misery_n this_o explanation_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o my_o assertion_n be_v sufficient_a to_o answer_v some_o common_a objection_n against_o it_o and_o i_o hope_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o will_v be_v full_o evidence_v by_o the_o follow_a argument_n first_o this_o truth_n be_v a_o clear_a consectary_n from_o those_o principle_n of_o holiness_n that_o have_v be_v already_o confirm_v i_o have_v show_v that_o we_o must_v have_v a_o good_a persuasion_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o of_o our_o happiness_n in_o heaven_n and_o of_o our_o sufficient_a strength_n both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v rational_o incline_v and_o bend_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n and_o that_o these_o endowment_n must_v be_v have_v by_o receive_v of_o christ_n himself_o with_o his_o spirit_n and_o all_o his_o fullness_n by_o trust_v on_o he_o for_o all_o his_o salvation_n as_o he_o be_v free_o promise_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o by_o this_o faith_n we_o do_v as_o real_o receive_v christ_n as_o our_o food_n by_o eat_v and_o drink_v now_o let_v right_a reason_n judge_n can_v we_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n of_o our_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o our_o strength_n to_o serve_v god_n and_o yet_o be_v without_o any_o comfort_n can_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n be_v believe_v and_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n actual_o believe_v into_o the_o heart_n without_o any_o relief_n to_o the_o soul_n from_o oppress_a fear_n grief_n despair_n can_v the_o salvation_n of_o christ_n be_v comfortless_a or_o the_o bread_n and_o water_n of_o life_n without_o any_o sweet_a relish_n to_o those_o that_o feed_v on_o he_o with_o hunger_a and_o thirst_a appetite_n god_n will_v not_o give_v such_o benefit_n as_o these_o to_o those_o that_o do_v not_o desire_v and_o esteem_v they_o above_o the_o world_n and_o certain_o the_o very_a receive_n of_o they_o will_v be_v comfortable_a to_o such_o except_o they_o receive_v they_o blindfold_a which_o they_o can_v do_v when_o the_o very_a give_v and_o bestow_v of_o they_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o turn_v he_o from_o darkness_n to_o light_n whereby_o he_o do_v at_o least_o in_o some_o measure_n see_v and_o perceive_v spiritual_o the_o thing_n that_o concern_v his_o present_a and_o future_a peace_n and_o reap_v some_o encourage_n and_o strengthen_v comfort_n thereby_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n second_o peace_n joy_n hope_v be_v recommend_v to_o we_o in_o scripture_n as_o the_o spring_n of_o other_o holy_a duty_n and_o fear_v and_o oppress_a grief_n forbid_v as_o hindrance_n to_o true_a religion_n the_o peace_n of_o god_n keep_v our_o heart_n and_o mind_n through_o christ_n jesus_n phil._n 4.7_o be_v you_o not_o sorry_a for_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v your_o strength_n nehem._n 8.10_o every_o man_n that_o have_v this_o hope_n in_o he_o purify_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v pure_a 1_o john_n 3.3_o fear_n have_v torment_n he_o that_o fear_v be_v not_o make_v perfect_a in_o love_n 1_o john_n 4.18_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n double_v his_o exhortation_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o as_o a_o duty_n of_o exceed_a weight_n and_o necessity_n phil._n 4.4_o what_o be_v such_o duty_n but_o comfort_n itself_o and_o can_v we_o think_v that_o these_o duty_n be_v necessary_a to_o our_o continuance_n in_o a_o holy_a practice_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o where_o the_o work_n be_v most_o difficult_a and_o encouragement_n most_o needful_a therefore_o we_o must_v make_v haste_n in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o get_v a_o comfortable_a frame_n of_o spirit_n if_o we_o will_v make_v hast●_n and_o not_o delay_v to_o keep_v god_n holy_a commandment_n three_o the_o usual_a method_n of_o gospel-doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v first_o to_o comfort_v our_o heart_n and_o thereby_o to_o establish_v we_o in_o every_o good_a word_n and_o work_n 2_o thess_n 2.17_o and_o it_o appear_v how_o clear_o this_o method_n be_v adjust_v in_o several_a epistle_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n wherein_o they_o first_o acquaint_v the_o church_n with_o the_o rich_a grace_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o in_o christ_n and_o the_o spiritual_a blessing_n which_o they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o for_o their_o strong_a consolation_n and_o then_o they_o exhort_v they_o to_o a_o holy_a conversation_n answerable_a to_o such_o privilege_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o method_n of_o whole_a epistle_n but_o of_o many_o particular_a exhortation_n to_o duty_n wherein_o the_o comfortable_a benefit_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v make_v use_n of_o as_o argument_n and_o motive_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o saint_n to_o a_o holy_a practice_n which_o comfortable_a benefit_n must_v be_v first_o believe_v and_o the_o comfort_n of_o they_o apply_v to_o our_o own_o soul_n or_o else_o they_o will_v not_o be_v forcible_a to_o engage_v we_o to_o the_o practice_n for_o which_o they_o be_v intend_v to_o give_v you_o a_o few_o instance_n out_o of_o a_o multitude_n that_o may_v be_v allege_v we_o be_v exhort_v to_o practise_v holy_a duty_n because_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n and_o alive_a to_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n rom._n 6.11_o and_o because_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o for_o we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n rom._n 6.14_o because_o we_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o god_n will_v quicken_v our_o mortal_a body_n by_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o we_o rom._n 8.9.11_o 12._o because_o our_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o cor._n 6.15_o 19_o because_o god_n have_v make_v he_o sin_n for_o we_o who_o know_v no_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 2_o cor._n 5.20_o 21._o and_o have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v dwell_v in_o we_o and_o walk_v in_o we_o and_o be_v to_o we_o a_o father_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v to_o he_o son_n and_o daughter_n 2_o cor._n 7.1_o because_o god_n have_v forgive_v we_o for_o ghrist_n sake_n and_o account_v we_o his_o dear_a child_n and_o christ_n have_v love_v we_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o and_o we_o that_o be_v sometime_o darken_v be_v now_o lighten_v in_o the_o lord_n ephes_n 4.32_o &_o 5.1_o 2_o 8._o because_o we_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n and_o when_o christ_n who_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v than_o we_o shall_v also_o appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n col._n 3.1.4_o because_o god_n have_v say_v i_o will_v never_o leave_v thou_o nor_o forsake_v thou_o heb._n 13.5_o because_o of_o the_o many_o promise_n make_v to_o we_o 2_o cor._n 7.1_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o you_o may_v with_o delight_n see_v that_o be_v this_o the_o vein_n that_o run_v through_o gospel_n exhortation_n and_o you_o may_v find_v the_o like_a vein_n of_o comfort_n run_v through_o the_o prophetical_a exhortation_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n some_o may_v object_v that_o the_o apostle_n use_v this_o method_n in_o their_o write_n to_o saint_n that_o have_v practise_v holiness_n already_o that_o so_o they_o may_v continue_v and_o increase_v therein_o but_o to_o that_o i_o may_v easy_o reply_v if_o it_o be_v a_o method_n needful_a for_o grow_v saint_n much_o more_o than_o for_o beginner_n that_o find_v the_o work_n of_o obedience_n most_o difficult_a and_o have_v most_o need_v of_o strong_a consolation_n and_o i_o hope_v to_o show_v how_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o lay_v hold_n
when_o the_o gentile_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o be_v glad_a and_o as_o many_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o eternal_a life_n believe_v the_o apostle_n paul_n be_v constrain_v by_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n to_o give_v up_o himself_o to_o live_v to_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 4.14_o 15._o i_o dare_v appeal_n to_o the_o experience_n of_o any_o that_o obey_v god_n out_o of_o hearty_a love_n let_v they_o examine_v themselves_o and_o consider_v whither_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o serve_v god_n in_o love_n without_o comfortable_a apprehension_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o i_o dare_v say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o prodigy_n in_o the_o new_a birth_n seven_o what_o comfortless_a religion_n do_v those_o make_v that_o allow_v people_n no_o comfort_n before_o hand_n to_o strengthen_v they_o for_o holy_a performance_n that_o be_v very_a cross_n displease_v and_o grievous_a to_o their_o natural_a inclination_n as_o the_o pluck_n out_o of_o a_o right_a eye_n cut_v off_o of_o a_o right_a hand_n but_o will_v have_v they_o first_o to_o do_v such_o thing_n with_o love_n and_o delight_n under_o all_o their_o present_a fear_n despondency_n and_o corrupt_a inclination_n and_o to_o hope_v that_o by_o do_v the_o work_n thorough_o and_o sincere_o they_o shall_v at_o last_o attain_v to_o a_o more_o comfortable_a state_n all_o true_a spiritual_a comfort_n as_o well_o as_o salvation_n be_v indeed_o quite_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o world_n if_o it_o be_v suspend_v upon_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o good_a work_n which_o have_v already_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n that_o work_v no_o comfort_n but_o wrath_n rom._n 4.15_o this_o make_v the_o way_n of_o godliness_n odious_a to_o many_o they_o think_v they_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v a_o pleasant_a hour_n in_o this_o world_n if_o they_o walk_v in_o they_o and_o they_o have_v rather_o comfort_v themselves_o with_o sinful_a pleasure_n than_o have_v no_o comfort_n at_o all_o other_o labour_v a_o while_n in_o such_o a_o comfortless_a religion_n with_o inward_a fret_a and_o repine_v at_o the_o bondage_n of_o it_o and_o at_o last_o grow_v wearry_v and_o throw_v of_o all_o religion_n because_o they_o know_v none_o better_o they_o that_o bound_v such_o heavy_a burden_n upon_o man_n and_o grievous_a to_o be_v bear_v will_v plead_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o they_o do_v but_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n whereas_o indeed_o they_o preach_v a_o gospel_n of_o man_n be_v own_o forge_v contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o true_a gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v glad_a tiding_n of_o great_a joy_n to_o all_o people_n luk._n 2.10_o a_o uncomfortable_a gospel_n can_v proceed_v from_o god_n the_o father_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n and_o the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n 2_o cor._n 1.3_o nor_o from_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o consolation_n of_o israel_n luk._n 2.25_o nor_o from_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v the_o comforter_n joh._n 14.16_o 17._o god_n meet_v he_o that_o rejoice_v and_o work_v righteousness_n isa_n 64.5_o he_o will_v be_v serve_v with_o gladness_n and_o sing_v as_o he_o show_v by_o the_o type_n of_o variety_n of_o music_n and_o great_a number_n of_o musician_n in_o the_o temple_n christ_n speak_v to_o we_o by_o his_o gospel_n that_o his_o joy_n may_v abide_v in_o we_o and_o that_o our_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a job_n 15.11_o no_o sorrow_n be_v approve_v of_o by_o god_n except_o godly_a sorrow_n which_o can_v never_o be_v in_o we_o without_o some_o comfort_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o they_o that_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o uncomfortableness_n of_o a_o religious_a life_n never_o yet_o know_v the_o true_a way_n of_o religion_n else_o they_o will_v find_v that_o the_o way_n of_o wisdom_n ar●_n way_n of_o pleasantness_n and_o all_o her_o path_n peace_n prov_n 3.17_o direct_v x._o that_o we_o may_v be_v prepare_v by_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o perform_v sincere_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n we_o must_v get_v some_o assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o that_o very_a faith_n whereby_o christ_n himself_o be_v receive_v into_o our_o heart_n therefore_o i_o must_v endeavoar_v to_o believe_v on_o christ_n confident_o persuade_v and_o assure_v ourselves_o in_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v that_o god_n free_o give_v to_o we_o a_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n according_a to_o his_o gracious_a promise_n explication_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o a_o holy_a practice_n can_v be_v true_o receive_v without_o some_o assurance_n of_o our_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n for_o some_o of_o those_o comfort_n consist_v in_o a_o good_a persuasion_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o of_o our_o future_a heavenly_a happiness_n and_o of_o strength_n both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n through_o christ_n as_o have_v be_v before_o show_v hence_o it_o will_v clear_o follow_v that_o this_o assurance_n be_v very_o necessary_a to_o enable_v we_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o holiness_n as_o those_o comfort_n that_o must_v go_v before_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o cause_n go_v before_o the_o effect_n though_o not_o in_o any_o distance_n of_o time_n my_o present_a work_n be_v to_o show_v what_o this_o assurance_n be_v that_o be_v so_o necessary_a unto_o holiness_n and_o which_o i_o have_v here_o assert_v that_o we_o must_v act_v in_o that_o very_a faith_n whereby_o we_o receive_v christ_n himself_o into_o our_o heart_n even_o in_o justify_v save_a faith_n this_o doctrine_n seem_v strange_a to_o many_o that_o profess_v themselves_o protestant_n a_o late_a day_n whereas_o it_o be_v former_o high_o own_v by_o the_o chief_a protestant_n who_o god_n make_v use_v of_o to_o restore_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o maintain_v it_o against_o the_o papist_n for_o many_o year_n they_o common_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o persuasion_n or_o confidence_n of_o our_o own_o salvation_n by_o christ_n and_o that_o we_o must_v be_v sure_a to_o apply_v christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n to_o ourselves_o in_o believe_v and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a engine_n whereby_o they_o prevail_v to_o overthrow_v the_o popish_a superstition_n whereto_o doubtfulness_n of_o salvation_n be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a pillar_n but_o many_o of_o the_o successor_n of_o those_o protestant_n have_v desert_v they_o and_o leave_v their_o write_n to_o be_v shameful_o insult_v over_o by_o the_o papist_n and_o this_o innovation_n have_v be_v of_o long_a stand_v among_o we_o than_o several_a other_o part_n of_o our_o new_a divinity_n and_o maintain_v by_o those_o that_o profess_v to_o abhor_v that_o corrupt_a doctrine_n which_o the_o papist_n have_v build_v upon_o such_o principle_n modern_a divine_n may_v think_v they_o stand_v upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o their_o predecessor_n who_o labour_n they_o enjoy_v and_o that_o they_o can_v see_v far_o than_o they_o as_o the_o schoolman_n may_v have_v like_o thought_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o for_o all_o this_o they_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o see_v so_o far_o if_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o predecessor_n be_v better_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o why_o may_v we_o not_o judge_v that_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n the_o eye_n of_o man_n in_o these_o late_a year_n have_v be_v blind_v in_o this_o point_n of_o assurance_n by_o many_o false_a imagination_n they_o think_v that_o because_o salvation_n be_v not_o promise_v to_o we_o absolute_o but_o upon_o condition_n of_o believe_v on_o christ_n for_o it_o therefore_o we_o must_v first_o believe_v direct_o on_o christ_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o after_o that_o we_o must_v reflect_v our_o mind_n upon_o our_o faith_n and_o examine_v it_o by_o several_a mark_n and_o sign_n especial_o by_o the_o fruit_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n and_o if_o upon_o this_o examination_n we_o find_v out_o certain_o that_o it_o be_v true_a save_a faith_n then_o and_o not_o before_o we_o may_v believe_v assure_o that_o we_o in_o particular_a shall_v be_v save_v on_o this_o account_n they_o say_v that_o our_o salvation_n be_v by_o the_o direct_a and_o our_o assurance_n by_o the_o reflect_v act_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o many_o have_v true_a faith_n and_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o never_o have_v any_o assurance_n of_o their_o salvation_n as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v in_o this_o world_n they_o find_v by_o scripture_n and_o experience_n that_o many_o precious_a saint_n of_o god_n be_v frequent_o trouble_v with_o doubt_n whither_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o whither_o their_o faith_n and_o obedience_n
be_v sincere_a so_o that_o they_o can_v see_v assurance_n in_o themselves_o therefore_o they_o conclude_v that_o assurance_n must_v not_o be_v account_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o justify_v faith_n and_o salvation_n lest_o we_o shall_v make_v the_o heart_n of_o doubt_v saint_n sad_a and_o drive_v they_o to_o despair_v they_o account_v that_o former_a protestant_n be_v guilty_a of_o a_o manifest_a absurdity_n in_o make_v assurance_n to_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n and_o definition_n of_o saving-faith_n because_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o gospel_n be_v bind_v to_o saving-faith_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v absolute_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o themselves_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o then_o many_o of_o they_o will_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v not_o declare_v in_o the_o gospel_n concern_v they_o in_o particular_a yea_o that_o which_o be_v a_o plain_a lie_n because_o the_o gospel_n show_v that_o many_o of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v be_v not_o choose_v to_o salvation_n and_o that_o perish_v for_o ever_o mat._n 20.16_o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o appearance_n of_o so_o great_a a_o absurdity_n move_v many_o to_o imagine_v that_o saving-faith_n be_v a_o trust_n or_o rest_v on_o christ_n as_o the_o only_a sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n without_o any_o assurance_n or_o that_o it_o be_v a_o desire_v and_o venture_v to_o trust_v or_o rely_v upon_o he_o in_o a_o mere_a state_n of_o suspense_n and_o uncertainty_n concern_v our_o salvation_n or_o with_o a_o probable_a opinion_n or_o conjectural_a hope_n of_o it_o at_o best_a another_o objection_n against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o assurance_n be_v that_o it_o destroy_v self-examination_n bring_v forth_o the_o evil_a fruit_n of_o pride_n and_o arrogancy_n as_o if_o they_o know_v their_o place_n in_o heaven_n already_o before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n cause_v carelessness_n of_o duty_n carnal_a security_n all_o manner_n of_o licentiousness_n and_o this_o make_v they_o commend_v doubtfulness_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o necessary_a to_o maintain_v in_o we_o humility_n religious_a fear_n watchfulness_n much_o search_a and_o try_v our_o spiritual_a state_n and_o way_n diligence_n in_o good_a work_n and_o all_o deyotion_n against_o all_o those_o contrary_a imagination_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o maintain_v this_o ancient_a protestant_a doctrine_n of_o assurance_n as_o i_o have_v express_v in_o the_o direction_n and_o first_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o some_o observation_n for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o it_o which_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o turn_v the_o edge_n of_o the_o strong_a objection_n that_o can_v be_v make_v against_o it_o first_o observe_v diligent_o that_o the_o assurance_n direct_v unto_o be_v not_o a_o persuasion_n that_o we_o have_v already_o receive_v christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n or_o that_o we_o have_v be_v already_o bring_v in_o to_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n but_o only_o that_o god_n be_v please_v gracious_o to_o give_v christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n unto_o we_o and_o to_o bring_v we_o into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n though_o we_o have_v be_v altogether_o in_o a_o state_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n until_o this_o present_a time_n so_o that_o this_o doctrine_n do_v not_o at_o all_o tend_v to_o breed_v presumption_n in_o wicked_a and_o unregenerate_a man_n that_o their_o state_n be_v good_a already_o but_o only_o encourage_v they_o to_o come_v to_o christ_n confident_o for_o a_o good_a state_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o may_v yea_o many_o must_v be_v teach_v to_o doubt_v whether_o their_o present_a state_n be_v good_a and_o that_o it_o be_v humility_n so_o to_o do_v and_o that_o we_o must_v find_v out_o the_o certainty_n and_o sincerity_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o obedience_n by_o self-examination_n before_o we_o can_v have_v a_o wellgrounded_n assurance_n that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n already_o and_o that_o such_o a_o assurance_n belong_v to_o that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o reflect_v act_n of_o faith_n if_o any_o act_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v make_v of_o it_o be_v spiritual_a sense_n or_o feel_n of_o what_o be_v in_o myself_o and_o be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o that_o faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o that_o many_o precious_a saint_n be_v without_o it_o and_o subject_a to_o many_o doubt_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o so_o that_o they_o may_v not_o know_v at_o all_o that_o it_o shall_v go_v well_o with_o they_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v sometime_o intermit_v if_o not_o whole_o lose_v after_o it_o be_v get_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v strive_v to_o walk_v holy_o that_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o it_o because_o it_o be_v very_o useful_a for_o our_o growth_n and_o increase_n in_o faith_n and_o in_o all_o holiness_n most_o protestant_n among_o we_o when_o they_o speak_v or_o write_v of_o assurance_n mean_v only_o that_o which_o be_v by_o reflection_n and_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o brief_o to_o show_v that_o what_o i_o assert_v be_v consistent_a with_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v common_o receive_v concern_v it_o and_o destructive_a to_o none_o of_o the_o good_a fruit_n of_o it_o therefore_o not_o guilty_a of_o those_o evil_n that_o some_o false_o charge_v it_o with_o this_o kind_n of_o assurance_n which_o i_o speak_v of_o answer_v not_o the_o question_n whither_o i_o be_o already_o in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n there_o be_v another_o great_a question_n that_o the_o soul_n must_v answer_v that_o it_o may_v get_v into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n whether_o god_n be_v gracious_o please_v now_o to_o bestow_v christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n upon_o i_o though_o i_o have_v be_v hitherto_o a_o very_a wicked_a creature_n we_o must_v be_v sure_a to_o resolve_v this_o question_n comfortable_o by_o another_o kind_n of_o assurance_n in_o the_o direct_a act_n of_o faith_n wherein_o we_o be_v to_o persuade_v ourselves_o without_o reflect_v upon_o any_o good_a qualification_n in_o ourselves_o that_o god_n be_v ready_a gracious_o to_o receive_v we_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o save_a mercy_n in_o christ_n notwithstanding_o all_o our_o former_a wickedness_n according_a to_o the_o gracious_a promise_n i_o will_v call_v they_o my_o people_n which_o be_v not_o my_o people_n and_o her_o belove_a which_o be_v not_o belove_v and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o you_o be_v not_o my_o people_n there_o shall_v they_o be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o the_o live_a god_n rom._n 9.25_o 26._o second_o the_o assurance_n direct_v unto_o be_v not_o a_o persuasion_n of_o our_o salvation_n whatever_o we_o do_v or_o however_o we_o live_v and_o walk_v but_o only_o in_o a_o limit_a way_n through_o mere_a freegrace_n in_o christ_n by_o partake_v of_o holiness_n as_o well_o as_o forgiveness_n and_o by_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v not_o hearty_o desire_v or_o endeavour_v to_o assure_v ourselves_o of_o such_o a_o salvation_n as_o this_o if_o we_o be_v not_o bring_v first_o to_o see_v our_o own_o sinfulness_n and_o misery_n and_o to_o despair_v of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n and_o strength_n and_o to_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n for_o the_o sanctify_a as_o well_o as_o justify_v grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n that_o so_o we_o may_v walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o heavenly_a glory_n the_o faith_n whereby_o we_o receive_v christ_n must_v have_v in_o it_o not_o only_o a_o persuasion_n of_o happiness_n but_o these_o and_o the_o like_a good_a qualification_n that_o will_v make_v it_o a_o most_o holy_a faith_n certain_o a_o assurance_n thus_o qualify_v will_v not_o beget_v any_o pride_n in_o we_o but_o rather_o humility_n and_o self-loathing_a except_o any_o account_n it_o pride_n to_o rejoice_v and_o glory_n in_o christ_n when_o we_o have_v no_o confidence_n in_o the_o flesh_n phil._n 3.3_o it_o will_v not_o destroy_v religious_a fear_n and_o breed_v carnal_a security_n but_o rather_o it_o will_v make_v we_o fear_v go_v aside_o from_o christ_n our_o only_a resuge_n and_o security_n and_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n noah_n have_v cause_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o to_o abide_v there_o with_o assurance_n of_o his_o preservation_n yet_o he_o may_v well_o be_v afraid_a to_o venture_v out_o of_o the_o ark_n because_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o continuance_n in_o the_o ark_n be_v his_o only_a safery_n from_o perish_v in_o the_o flood_n and_o how_o can_v a_o persuasion_n of_o salvation_n in_o a_o way_n of_o holiness_n breed_v sloathfulness_n in_o duty_n carelessness_n and_o licentiousness_n it_o do_v rather_o mighty_o allure_v we_o and_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o be_v always_o abound_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o know_v that_o our_o labour_n
past_a and_o go_v joh._n 3.8_o we_o must_v therefore_o begin_v the_o work_n before_o we_o know_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v or_o will_v work_v in_o we_o save_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o set_v upon_o the_o work_n if_o we_o believe_v for_o thy_o people_n shall_v be_v willing_a in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o power_n psal_n 110.3_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o god_n discover_v to_o we_o beforehand_o in_o the_o gospel_n what_o faith_n be_v and_o the_o ground_n we_o have_v to_o believe_v on_o christ_n for_o our_o own_o salvation_n and_o that_o god_n require_v this_o duty_n of_o we_o and_o will_v help_v we_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o if_o we_o apply_v ourselves_o hearty_o thereunto_o fear_v not_o i_o command_v thou_o to_o be_v strong_a and_o of_o good_a courage_n josh_n 1._o arise_v and_o be_v do_v and_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v with_o thou_o 1_o chron._n 22.16_o therefore_o whoso_o receive_v this_o gospel-discovery_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o hearty_a love_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o will_v certain_o come_v to_o christ_n by_o believe_v joh._n 6.45_o every_o one_o that_o receive_v it_o not_o despise_v god_n make_v he_o a_o liar_n and_o deserve_v just_o to_o perish_v for_o his_o unbelief_n 4._o though_o the_o spirit_n work_v save_v faith_n only_o in_o the_o elect_n and_o other_o believe_v not_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n sheep_n joh._n 10.26_o and_o on_o that_o account_n be_v call_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n elect_n tit._n 1.1_o yet_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o gospel_n be_v oblige_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o believe_v as_o well_o as_o to_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o that_o before_o they_o know_v their_o own_o particular_a election_n and_o they_o be_v liable_a to_o condemnation_n for_o unbelief_n as_o well_o as_o for_o any_o other_o sin_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v on_o the_o navy_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n joh._n 3.18_o the_o apostle_n paul_n show_v that_o the_o elect_a israelite_n obtain_v salvation_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v not_o elect_v be_v blind_v and_o yet_o even_o these_o be_v break_v off_o from_o the_o good_a olive-tree_n because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n rom._n 11.7_o 20._o we_o can_v have_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o our_o election_n to_o eternal_a life_n before_o we_o do_v believe_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n hide_v in_o the_o unsearchable_a counsel_n of_o god_n until_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o our_o effectual_a call_v and_o believe_v on_o christ_n the_o apostle_n know_v the_o election_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o by_o find_v the_o evidence_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o they_o not_o in_o word_n only_o but_o also_o in_o power_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o much_o assurance_n and_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o word_n in_o much_o affliction_n with_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o thes_n 1.4_o 5_o 6._o we_o be_v to_o see_v our_o call_v if_o we_o will_v find_v out_o that_o god_n have_v choose_v we_o 1_o cor._n 1.26_o 27._o therefore_o we_o must_v believe_v on_o christ_n before_o we_o know_v our_o election_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v never_o know_v it_o and_o shall_v never_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v no_o presumption_n for_o we_o to_o trust_v confident_o on_o christ_n for_o everlasting_a life_n before_o we_o have_v any_o good_a evidence_n of_o our_o election_n because_o god_n that_o can_v lie_v have_v make_v a_o general_a promise_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a without_o make_v the_o least_o difference_n among_o they_o that_o perform_v this_o duty_n rom._n 10.11_o 12._o the_o promise_n be_v as_o firm_a and_o sure_a to_o be_v fulfil_v as_o any_o of_o god_n decree_n and_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o good_a and_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o our_o confidence_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o that_o the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o christ_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o eternal_a election_n shall_v come_v to_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v as_o real_o certain_a that_o christ_n will_v in_o no_o wise_a cast_v out_o any_o that_o come_v to_o he_o whosoever_o he_o be_v joh._n 6.37_o and_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v that_o we_o shall_v infringe_v god_n decree_n of_o election_n by_o believe_v on_o christ_n confident_o for_o our_o salvation_n before_o we_o know_v what_o god_n have_v decree_v concern_v we_o for_o if_o we_o believe_v we_o shall_v at_o last_o be_v find_v among_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect._n and_o if_o we_o refuse_v to_o believe_v we_o shall_v thereby_o wilful_o sort_v ourselves_o among_o the_o reprobate_n that_o stumble_v at_o the_o word_n be_v disobedient_a whereunto_o also_o they_o be_v appoint_v 1_o pet._n 2.8_o i_o shall_v add_v further_o that_o though_o we_o have_v no_o evidence_n of_o our_o particular_a election_n before_o we_o believe_v yet_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v on_o christ_n assure_o to_o make_v it_o evident_a to_o we_o by_o give_v we_o that_o salvation_n which_o be_v the_o peculiar_a portion_n of_o the_o elect_a only_o all_o spiritual_a save_a blessing_n wherewith_o god_n bless_v his_o people_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o peculiar_a portion_n of_o they_o who_o god_n have_v choose_v in_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n eph._n 1.3_o 4._o yet_o we_o must_v necessary_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o those_o save_a blessing_n or_o have_v none_o at_o all_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v in_o faith_n nothing_o doubt_v that_o god_n will_v remember_v we_o with_o the_o favour_n that_o he_o bear_v to_o his_o people_n that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o good_a of_o his_o choose_a and_o glory_n with_o his_o inheritance_n psal_n 106.4_o 5._o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v assure_o on_o god_n that_o he_o will_v deal_v with_o we_o as_o his_o choose_a people_n thus_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v not_o presumption_n but_o your_o bind_a duty_n to_o apply_v yourselves_o to_o the_o great_a work_n of_o believe_v on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n without_o question_v at_o all_o beforehand_o whether_o you_o be_v elect_v or_o no_o secret_a thing_n belong_v to_o god_n but_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v reveal_v belong_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v do_v they_o deut._n 29.29_o the_o second_o thing_n direct_v to_o be_v that_o you_o shall_v endeavour_v for_o a_o right_a manner_n of_o perform_v this_o duty_n this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o great_a concernment_n because_o the_o want_n of_o it_o will_v render_v your_o faith_n ineffectual_a to_o sanctification_n and_o salvation_n the_o great_a duty_n of_o love_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o principal_a fruit_n of_o sanctification_n must_v flow_v from_o faith_n unfeigned_a 1_o tim._n 1.5_o there_o be_v a_o feign_a faith_n that_o do_v not_o real_o receive_v christ_n into_o the_o heart_n and_o will_v not_o produce_v love_n or_o any_o true_a obedience_n such_o as_o simon_n magus_n have_v act_n 8.13.23_o for_o notwithstanding_o his_o faith_n he_o be_v in_o the_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n and_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o iniquity_n and_o such_o as_o those_o jew_n have_v to_o who_o christ_n will_v not_o commit_v himself_o who_o do_v not_o confess_v he_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n joh._n 2.23_o and_o 12.42_o and_o such_o as_o the_o apostle_n james_n speak_v of_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v you_o my_o brethren_n if_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n and_o have_v not_o work_n can_v that_o faith_n save_v he_o the_o devil_n also_o believe_v and_o tremble_v jam._n 2.14_o 19_o take_v heed_n therefore_o lest_o you_o deceive_v your_o soul_n with_o a_o counterfeit_a faith_n instead_o of_o the_o precious_a faith_n of_o god_n elect._n the_o way_n to_o distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o be_v by_o consider_v well_o what_o be_v the_o right_a manner_n of_o that_o believe_v which_o be_v effectaal_a to_o salvation_n hypocrite_n may_v perform_v the_o same_o work_n for_o the_o matter_n with_o true_a saint_n but_o they_o be_v defective_a in_o the_o manner_n of_o performance_n wherein_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o work_n do_v chief_o consist_v one_o great_a reason_n why_o many_o strive_v to_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o strait_a gate_n and_o be_v not_o able_a be_v because_o they_o be_v ignorant_a and_o defective_a in_o the_o right_a manner_n of_o act_v this_o faith_n whereby_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v now_o i_o confess_v that_o god_n only_o be_v able_a to_o guide_v we_o effectual_o in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o believe_v and_o we_o have_v this_o great_a consolation_n when_o we_o see_v our_o own_o folly_n and_o proneness_n to_o mistake_v our_o way_n that_o if_o we_o hearty_o desire_v and_o endeavour_v to_o believe_v on_o christ_n aright_o we_o may_v confident_o trust_v on_o christ_n to_o guide_v
we_o god_n have_v promise_v that_o the_o wayfaring_a man_n though_o fool_n shall_v not_o err_v in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n and_o that_o he_o will_v teach_v sinner_n in_o the_o way_n the_o meek_n will_v he_o guide_v in_o judgement_n and_o the_o meek_n will_v he_o teach_v his_o way_n psal_n 25.8_o 9_o and_o he_o command_v they_o that_o lack_v wisdom_n to_o ask_v it_o of_o god_n in_o faith_n nothing_o doubt_v jam._n 1.5_o 6._o but_o however_o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o god_n guide_v we_o only_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o word_n and_o we_o must_v endeavour_v to_o learn_v the_o right_a way_n of_o believe_v out_o of_o the_o word_n or_o else_o we_o be_v not_o able_a so_o much_o as_o to_o trust_v right_o on_o god_n for_o guidance_n and_o direction_n in_o this_o great_a work_n to_o help_v you_o herein_o i_o have_v give_v you_o before_o in_o this_o treatise_n a_o description_n of_o save_a faith_n and_o have_v show_v that_o it_o contain_v two_o act_n in_o it_o the_o one_o be_v believe_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o other_o be_v believe_v on_o christ_n as_o reveal_v and_o free_o promise_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n for_o all_o his_o salvation_n now_o your_o great_a endeavour_n must_v be_v to_o perform_v both_o these_o act_n in_o a_o right_a manner_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v concern_v each_o of_o they_o in_o particular_a in_o the_o first_o place_n you_o be_v high_o concern_v to_o endeavour_v for_o a_o right_a belief_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v well_o furnish_v dispose_v and_o encourage_v to_o believe_v on_o christ_n as_o reveal_v and_o promise_v in_o the_o gospel_n hereby_o you_o be_v to_o remove_v all_o uncomfortable_a thought_n and_o objection_n of_o satan_n and_o your_o own_o conscience_n and_o to_o overcome_v all_o corrupt_a inclination_n that_o hinder_v a_o cheerful_a embrace_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n it_o be_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o when_o any_o fail_n in_o the_o second_o act_n of_o faith_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o fail_n be_v common_o some_o defect_n in_o this_o first_o act._n there_o be_v some_o false_a imagination_n or_o other_o in_o they_o contrary_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v a_o strong_a hold_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n that_o must_v be_v pull_v down_o before_o they_o can_v receive_v christ_n into_o their_o heart_n by_o believe_v on_o he_o if_o they_o know_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o judge_v aright_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o excellency_n of_o it_o they_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o we_o be_v in_o great_a danger_n of_o entertain_v such_o false_a imagination_n and_o to_o account_v many_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n strange_a paradox_n yea_o foolish_a and_o pernicious_a because_o of_o our_o ignorance_n self-conceitedness_a guilty_a conscience_n corrupt_a affection_n and_o manifold_a error_n wherewith_o our_o judgement_n be_v prepossess_v in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n and_o because_o satan_n labour_v to_o beguile_v we_o as_o he_o do_v eve_n through_o his_o subtlety_n to_o corrupt_v our_o mind_n from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 11.3_o i_o shall_v therefore_o give_v you_o some_o particular_a instruction_n that_o be_v of_o great_a moment_n to_o prevent_v such_o defect_n as_o we_o be_v most_o liable_a to_o in_o the_o first_o act_n of_o our_o faith_n 1._o you_o must_v believe_v with_o a_o full_a persuasion_n that_o you_o be_v a_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o nature_n as_o well_o as_o other_o fall_v from_o god_n by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n subject_n to_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o to_o insupportable_a misery_n to_o all_o eternity_n and_o that_o you_o can_v possible_o procure_v your_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n or_o any_o spiritual_a life_n and_o strength_n to_o do_v any_o good_a work_n by_o any_o endeavour_v to_o get_v salvation_n according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o legal_a covenant_n and_o that_o you_o can_v find_v any_o way_n to_o escape_v out_o of_o this_o sinful_a and_o miserable_a condition_n by_o your_o own_o reason_n and_o understanding_n without_o supernatural_a revelation_n nor_o be_v free_v from_o it_o except_o by_o that_o infinite_a power_n that_o raise_v the_o dead_a we_o must_v not_o be_v afraid_a as_o some_o be_v to_o know_v our_o own_o vileness_n and_o sinfulness_n neither_o must_v we_o be_v willing_a to_o think_v ourselves_o better_a than_o we_o be_v but_o must_v be_v hearty_o desirous_a and_o glad_a to_o know_v the_o worst_a of_o our_o own_o condition_n yea_o when_o we_o have_v find_v out_o the_o worst_a that_o we_o can_v of_o ourselves_o yea_o we_o must_v be_v willing_a to_o believe_v that_o our_o heart_n be_v deceitful_a and_o desperate_o wicked_a beyond_o all_o that_o we_o can_v know_v and_o find_v out_o jer._n 17.9_o this_o be_v all_o necessary_a to_o work_v in_o we_o true_a humiliation_n self-despair_n and_o self-loathing_a that_o we_o may_v high_o esteem_v and_o earnest_o seek_v the_o salvation_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o one_o thing_n necessary_a it_o make_v we_o sick_a of_o sin_n and_o sensible_a of_o our_o need_n of_o the_o great_a physician_n and_o willing_a to_o be_v order_v according_a to_o any_o of_o his_o prescription_n whatsoever_o we_o suffer_v rather_o than_o to_o follow_v our_o own_o wisdom_n mat._n 9.12_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o this_o humiliation_n that_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n be_v not_o so_o forward_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o the_o publican_n and_o harlot_n mat._n 21.31_o 2._o you_o be_v to_o believe_v assure_o that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v save_v without_o receive_v all_o the_o save_a benesit_n of_o christ_n his_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o his_o merit_n sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n it_o be_v the_o ruin_n of_o many_o soul_n that_o they_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n without_o any_o regard_n to_o holiness_n whenas_o these_o two_o benefit_n be_v inseparable_o join_v in_o christ_n so_o that_o none_o be_v free_v from_o condemnation_n by_o christ_n but_o those_o that_o be_v enable_v to_o walk_v holy_o i._n e._n not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8.1_o it_o be_v also_o the_o ruin_n of_o soul_n to_o seek_v only_a remission_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o holiness_n by_o our_o endeavour_n according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o law_n whereas_o we_o can_v never_o live_v to_o god_n in_o holiness_n except_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o law_n and_o live_v only_o by_o christ_n live_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n that_o faith_n that_o receive_v not_o holiness_n as_o well_o as_o remission_n of_o sin_n from_o christ_n will_v never_o sanctify_v we_o and_o therefore_o it_o will_v never_o bring_v we_o to_o heavenly_a glory_n heb._n 12.14_o 3._o you_o be_v to_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o the_o all-sufficiency_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o yourself_o and_o of_o all_o that_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o his_o blood_n cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n 1_o joh._n 1.7_o though_o our_o sin_n be_v never_o so_o great_a and_o horrible_a and_o continue_v in_o never_o so_o long_o yet_o he_o be_v able_a to_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o body_n of_o death_n and_o mortify_v our_o corruption_n be_v they_o never_o so_o strong_a we_o find_v in_o scripture_n that_o abominable_a wicked_a person_n have_v be_v save_v by_o he_o idolater_n adulterer_n effeminate_a covetous_a drunkard_n extortioner_n etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 6.9_o 10._o such_o as_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o jew_n such_o as_o have_v deny_v christ_n as_o peter_n and_o persecute_v and_o blasphame_v he_o as_o paul_n many_o that_o have_v fall_v into_o great_a sin_n be_v ruin_v for_o ever_o because_o they_o do_v not_o account_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n sufficient_a for_o their_o pardon_n and_o sanctification_n when_o they_o think_v they_o be_v go_v and_o pass_v all_o hope_n of_o recovery_n that_o their_o sin_n be_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o pine_v away_o in_o they_o and_o how_o shall_v they_o live_v ezek._n 33.10_o this_o despair_n work_v secret_o in_o many_o soul_n without_o much_o trouble_n and_o horror_n and_o make_v they_o careless_a of_o their_o soul_n and_o true_a religion_n the_o devil_n sill_n some_o with_o horrid_a filthy_a blasphemous_a thought_n on_o purpose_n that_o they_o may_v think_v their_o sin_n too_o great_a to_o be_v forgive_v though_o common_o such_o thought_n be_v the_o least_o of_o the_o sin_n of_o those_o that_o be_v pester_v
of_o the_o flesh_n and_o to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o new_a man_n in_o christ_n yet_o it_o hold_v true_a also_o that_o our_o reception_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o all_o his_o perfection_n be_v but_o in_o a_o imperfect_a measure_n and_o degree_n until_o faith_n be_v turn_v into_o heavenly_a vision_n and_o fruition_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o our_o old_a sinful_a state_n with_o the_o evil_n thereof_o be_v not_o perfect_o abolish_v during_o this_o life_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n or_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n within_o we_o be_v like_o leaven_n in_o meal_n and_o do_v not_o unite_v itself_o perfect_o to_o the_o meal_n in_o a_o instant_a but_o by_o degree_n until_o the_o whole_a be_v leaven_v mat._n 13.35_o or_o like_o the_o morning_n light_n that_o expel_v darkness_n by_o degree_n shine_v more_o and_o more_o unto_o a_o perfect_a day_n prov._n 4.18_o this_o can_v be_v just_o account_v any_o derogation_n to_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n or_o to_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n see_v christ_n never_o intend_v to_o bring_v to_o pass_v by_o his_o death_n or_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v his_o spiritual_a blessing_n any_o further_a than_o we_o be_v in_o he_o and_o enjoy_v he_o by_o faith_n or_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v holy_a or_o happy_a according_a to_o the_o flesh_n by_o a_o reformation_n of_o our_o natural_a state_n as_o have_v be_v show_v neither_o do_v this_o diminish_v the_o consolation_n of_o believer_n in_o christ_n for_o thereby_o they_o may_v know_v that_o they_o have_v the_o perfection_n of_o grace_n and_o happiness_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o enjoy_v it_o in_o this_o world_n as_o far_o as_o they_o enjoy_v christ_n himself_o by_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o in_o a_o perfect_a measure_n and_o be_v full_o free_v from_o their_o old_a sin_n and_o miserable_a state_n when_o that_o frame_n of_o nature_n which_o they_o receive_v from_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v dissolve_v by_o death_n this_o instruction_n be_v very_o useful_a to_o frame_v our_o soul_n aright_o for_o the_o practise_n of_o holiness_n only_o by_o those_o gospel_n principle_n and_o mean_n that_o belong_v to_o our_o new_a state_n which_o we_o be_v partaker_n of_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v easy_o vindicate_v from_o another_o great_a objection_n wherein_o the_o papist_n and_o quaker_n do_v much_o triumph_n they_o appeal_v to_o man_n conscience_n to_o answer_v this_o question_n which_o doctrine_n be_v most_o likely_a to_o bring_v people_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o true_a godliness_n they_o which_o teach_v that_o perfect_a holiness_n may_v be_v attain_v in_o this_o life_n or_o we_o which_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n perfect_o and_o to_o purge_v ourselves_o from_o all_o sin_n as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n though_o we_o use_v our_o best_a endeavour_n they_o think_v that_o common_a reason_n will_v make_v the_o verdict_n pass_v for_o they_o against_o our_o doctrine_n as_o that_o which_o discourage_v all_o endeavour_n for_o perfection_n and_o harden_v the_o heart_n of_o people_n to_o allow_v themselves_o in_o sin_n because_o they_o can_v avoid_v it_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o doctrine_n of_o perfection_n harden_v people_n to_o allow_v themselves_o in_o sin_n and_o to_o call_v evil_a good_a as_o the_o papist_n account_n that_o the_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n against_o the_o spirit_n be_v no_o sin_n but_o rather_o good_a matter_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o virtue_n because_o the_o most_o perfect_a in_o this_o life_n be_v not_o without_o it_o it_o also_o discourage_v those_o that_o labour_n to_o get_v holiness_n in_o the_o right_a way_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o make_v they_o to_o think_v that_o they_o labour_v in_o vain_a because_o they_o find_v themselves_o still_o sinful_a and_o far_o from_o perfection_n when_o they_o have_v do_v their_o best_a to_o attain_v it_o it_o hinder_v our_o diligence_n in_o seek_v holiness_n by_o these_o principle_n and_o mean_n whereby_o only_o it_o can_v be_v find_v for_o who_o will_v be_v diligent_a and_o watchful_a to_o avoid_v walk_v according_a to_o his_o own_o carnal_a principle_n if_o he_o think_v that_o his_o own_o carnal_a state_n with_o its_o principle_n be_v quite_o abolish_v and_o be_v out_o of_o he_o so_o that_o at_o present_a he_o be_v in_o no_o danger_n of_o walk_v according_a to_o they_o whatsoever_o good_a work_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o perfectionist_n may_v serve_v to_o promote_v i_o be_o sure_a it_o hinder_v a_o great_a part_n of_o that_o work_n which_o christ_n will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v employ_v in_o as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n we_o must_v know_v that_o our_o old_a state_n with_o its_o evil_a principle_n continue_v still_o in_o a_o measure_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v sit_v for_o the_o great_a duty_n of_o confese_v of_o sin_n loathe_v ourselves_o for_o they_o pray_v earnest_o for_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o a_o just_a sorrow_n for_o they_o with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n accept_v the_o punishment_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o give_v god_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o offer_v to_o he_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o break_a and_o contrite_a spirit_n be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n work_v out_o our_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a some_o have_v doubt_v how_o it_o can_v consist_v with_o our_o justification_n by_o christ_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v still_o liable_a to_o be_v punish_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o oblige_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o because_o they_o have_v not_o well_o consider_v the_o twofold_a state_n of_o believer_n in_o this_o life_n and_o except_o we_o know_v this_o and_o keep_v it_o in_o mind_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v sit_v to_o practice_v continual_o the_o great_a duty_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o put_v off_o the_o old_a man_n and_o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n and_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n by_o the_o spirit_n pray_v continual_o that_o god_n will_v renew_v a_o right_a spirit_n in_o we_o and_o sanctify_v we_o throughout_o press_v forward_o to_o perfection_n desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o other_o ordinance_n christ_n have_v appoint_v that_o his_o church_n on_o earth_n shall_v be_v employ_v in_o such_o work_n and_o perfectionist_n either_o do_v or_o say_v will_v account_v they_o needless_a for_o they_o and_o that_o they_o have_v no_o long_o need_v of_o christ_n himself_o to_o be_v their_o spiritual_a physician_n and_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n and_o propitiation_n for_o their_o sin_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o be_v never_o likely_a to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n in_o heaven_n except_o they_o can_v make_v a_o ladder_n and_o climb_v up_o thither_o before_o their_o time_n 2._o despair_v of_o purge_v the_o flesh_n or_o natural_a man_n of_o its_o sinful_a lust_n and_o inclination_n and_o of_o practise_v holiness_n by_o your_o willing_a and_o resolve_v to_o do_v the_o best_a that_o lie_v in_o your_o own_o power_n and_o trust_v on_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n to_o help_v you_o in_o such_o resolution_n and_o endeavour_n rather_o resolve_v to_o trust_v on_o christ_n to_o work_v in_o you_o to_o will_n and_o to_o do_v by_o his_o own_o power_n according_a to_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n they_o that_o be_v convince_v of_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o misery_n do_v common_o first_o think_v to_o tame_v the_o flesh_n and_o to_o subdue_v and_o root_v out_o its_o lust_n and_o to_o make_v their_o corrupt_a nature_n to_o be_v better_a nature_a and_o incline_v to_o holiness_n by_o their_o struggle_a and_o wrestle_v with_o it_o and_o if_o they_o can_v but_o bring_v their_o heart_n to_o a_o full_a purpose_n and_o resolution_n to_o do_v the_o best_a that_o lie_v in_o they_o they_o hope_v that_o by_o such_o a_o resolution_n they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o achieve_v great_a erterprise_n in_o the_o conquest_n of_o their_o lust_n and_o performance_n of_o the_o most_o difficult_a duty_n it_o be_v the_o great_a work_n of_o some_o zealous_a divine_n in_o their_o preach_a and_o write_n to_o stir_v up_o people_n to_o this_o resolution_n wherein_o they_o place_v the_o chief_a turn_v point_n from_o sin_n to_o godliness_n and_o they_o think_v that_o this_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n because_o they_o trust_v on_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n to_o help_v they_o in_o all_o such_o resolution_n and_o endeavour_n thus_o they_o endeavour_v to_o reform_v their_o old_a state_n and_o to_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o the_o flesh_n instead_o of_o put_v it_o off_o and_o walk_v according_a to_o
any_o present_a interest_n in_o christ_n and_o shall_v never_o attain_v unto_o holiness_n or_o happiness_n until_o they_o learn_v a_o better_a way_n of_o religion_n 4._o think_v not_o that_o you_o can_v effectual_o incline_v your_o heart_n to_o the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o holiness_n by_o any_o such_o practical_a principle_n as_o do_v only_o serve_v to_o bind_v press_v and_o urge_v you_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o holy_a duty_n but_o rather_o let_v such_o principle_n stir_v you_o up_o to_o go_v to_o christ_n first_o by_o faith_n that_o you_o may_v be_v effectual_o incline_v to_o the_o immediate_a practice_n of_o holiness_n in_o he_o by_o gospel_n principles_n that_o strengthen_v and_o enable_v you_o as_o well_o as_o oblige_v you_o thereunto_o there_o be_v some_o practical_a principle_n that_o do_v only_o bind_v press_v and_o urge_v we_o to_o holy_a duty_n by_o show_v the_o reasonableness_n equity_n and_o necessity_n of_o our_o obedience_n without_o show_v at_o all_o how_o we_o that_o be_v by_o nature_n dead_a in_o sin_n under_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n may_v have_v any_o strength_n and_o ability_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o as_o for_o instance_n the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o lawgiver_n our_o absolute_a dependence_n on_o he_o as_o our_o creator_n preserver_n governor_n in_o who_o hand_n be_v our_o life_n breath_n and_o all_o our_o happiness_n here_o and_o for_o ever_o his_o all-feeing_a eye_n that_o search_v our_o heart_n discern_v our_o very_a thought_n and_o secret_a purpose_n his_o exact_a justice_n in_o render_v to_o all_o according_a to_o their_o work_n his_o almighty_a and_o eternal_a power_n to_o reward_v those_o that_o obey_v he_o and_o to_o punish_v transgressor_n for_o ever_o the_o unspeakable_a joy_n of_o heaven_n and_o terrible_a damnation_n of_o hell_n such_o principle_n as_o these_o do_v bind_v our_o conscience_n very_o strict_o and_o do_v work_v very_o strong_o upon_o the_o prevalent_a affection_n of_o hope_n and_o fear_v to_o pross_v and_o urge_v our_o heart_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o holy_a duty_n if_o we_o believe_v they_o assure_o and_o work_v they_o earnest_o upon_o our_o heart_n by_o frequent_a serious_a lively_a meditation_n and_o therefore_o some_o account_v they_o most_o forcible_a and_o effectual_a mean_n to_o form_v any_o virtue_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o to_o bring_v it_o to_o immediate_a performance_n of_o any_o duty_n though_o never_o so_o difficult_a and_o that_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n consist_v principal_o in_o our_o live_n to_o god_n in_o holiness_n by_o a_o constant_a belief_n and_o meditation_n on_o they_o and_o they_o account_v those_o thing_n that_o serve_v to_o mind_v they_o of_o such_o principle_n very_o effectual_a for_o holiness_n as_o look_v on_o the_o picture_n of_o death_n or_o on_o a_o deaths-head_n keep_v a_o coffin_n by_o they_o ready_o make_v walk_v about_o among_o the_o grave_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v not_o that_o manner_n of_o live_v to_o god_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v i_o live_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n that_o live_v in_o i_o and_o the_o life_n that_o i_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n i_o live_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o love_v i_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o if_o a_o man_n make_v use_n of_o these_o oblige_a principle_n to_o stir_v he_o to_o go_v to_o christ_n for_o strength_n to_o act_n holy_o he_o walk_v like_o one_o that_o have_v receive_v christ_n as_o his_o only_a life_n by_o faith_n otherwise_o he_o walk_v like_o other_o natural_a men._n for_o the_o natural_a man_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o act_n by_o these_o principle_n partly_o by_o natural_a light_n and_o more_o full_o by_o scripture-light_n without_o any_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n and_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v never_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o he_o may_v be_v strict_o bind_v by_o they_o and_o vehement_o urge_v and_o press_v to_o holy_a duty_n and_o yet_o all_o this_o while_n be_v leave_v to_o his_o own_o natural_a strength_n or_o weakness_n be_v not_o assure_v by_o any_o of_o these_o principle_n that_o god_n will_v give_v he_o strength_n to_o help_v he_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o duty_n and_o can_v do_v nothing_o aright_o until_o he_o get_v new_a life_n and_o strength_n in_o christ_n by_o a_o more_o precious_a save_a faith_n there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o new_a life_n and_o strength_n by_o christ_n if_o these_o principle_n be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v we_o to_o a_o holy_a conversation_n therefore_o this_o manner_n of_o practice_n be_v no_o better_a than_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n according_a to_o our_o corrupt_a state_n and_o a_o seek_v to_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o the_o flesh_n no_o question_n but_o paul_n be_v very_o diligent_a in_o it_o while_o he_o be_v a_o blind_a pharisee_n yea_o the_o heathen_a philosopher_n may_v attain_v to_o it_o in_o some_o measure_n by_o the_o light_n of_o common_a reason_n the_o devil_n have_v such_o principle_n as_o they_o do_v believe_v assure_o yet_o they_o be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o they_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o that_o natural_a wisdom_n whereby_o the_o world_n know_v not_o god_n not_o that_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o a_o mystery_n discover_v in_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o only_a sanctify_a wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n what_o can_v you_o produce_v but_o corruption_n by_o press_v with_o motive_n to_o holiness_n one_o that_o have_v no_o soundness_n in_o he_o from_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n even_o to_o the_o head_n only_a wound_n and_o bruise_n and_o putrify_a sore_n he_o that_o be_v make_v true_o sensible_a of_o his_o own_o vileness_n and_o deadness_n by_o nature_n will_v despair_v of_o ever_o bring_v himself_o to_o holiness_n by_o principle_n that_o afford_v he_o no_o life_n and_o strength_n but_o only_o lay_v a_o obligation_n upon_o he_o and_o urge_v and_o press_v he_o to_o duty_n what_o be_v mere_a obligation_n to_o one_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n while_o the_o soul_n be_v without_o spiritual_a life_n sin_n be_v the_o more_o move_v and_o enrage_v by_o press_v and_o urge_v upon_o the_o soul_n the_o obligation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o its_o command_n the_o motion_n of_o sin_n be_v by_o the_o law_n and_o sin_n take_v occasion_n by_o the_o commandment_n work_v in_o we_o all_o manner_n of_o concupiscence_n rom._n 7.5_o 7_o 8._o and_o yet_o these_o oblige_a principle_n be_v very_o good_a and_o excellent_a in_o this_o right_a gospel_n use_v of_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o the_o law_n that_o it_o be_v good_a if_o it_o be_v use_v lawful_o 1_o tim._n 1.7_o the_o humble_a sinner_n know_v well_o his_o obligation_n but_o it_o be_v life_n and_o strength_n that_o he_o want_v and_o despair_v of_o walk_v according_a to_o such_o obligation_n until_o he_o get_v this_o life_n and_o strength_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n therefore_o these_o oblige_a principle_n do_v move_v he_o to_o go_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o christ_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o answer_v their_o end_n by_o the_o strengthen_n and_o enliven_a principle_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o christ_n some_o there_o be_v that_o make_v use_v of_o gospel-principle_n only_o to_o oblige_v and_o urge_v to_o duty_n without_o afford_v any_o life_n and_o strength_n for_o the_o performance_n as_o they_o that_o think_v that_o christ_n die_v and_o rise_v again_o to_o establish_v a_o new_a covenant_n of_o work_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o pattern_n of_o good_a work_n by_o his_o own_o obedience_n rather_o than_o to_o purchase_v life_n obedience_n and_o good_a work_n for_o we_o such_o as_o these_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o receive_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o gospel_n right_o but_o they_o pervert_v and_o abuse_v they_o contrary_a to_o their_o true_a nature_n and_o design_n and_o thereby_o they_o render_v they_o as_o ineffectual_a for_o their_o sanctification_n as_o any_o other_o natural_a or_o legal_a principle_n 5._o stir_v up_o and_o strengthen_v yourself_o to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o holiness_n by_o a_o firm_a persuasion_n of_o your_o enjoyment_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o all_o spiritual_a and_o everlasting_a benefit_n through_o he_o set_a not_o yourselves_o upon_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o law_n with_o any_o prevail_a thought_n or_o apprehension_n that_o you_o be_v yet_o without_o a_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n through_o he_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n have_v no_o better_a portion_n than_o this_o present_a world_n no_o better_a strength_n than_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o purpose_n and_o resolution_n of_o your_o own_o freewill_n while_o such_o thought_n as_o these_o prevail_v and_o influence_n your_o act_n its_o evident_a that_o you_o
walk_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o your_o old_a natural_a state_n and_o you_o will_v be_v move_v thereby_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n to_o withdraw_v yourselves_o from_o god_n and_o godliness_n as_o adam_n be_v move_v from_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o own_o nakedness_n to_o hide_v himself_o from_o god_n gen._n 3.10_o therefore_o your_o way_n to_o a_o holy_a practice_n be_v first_o to_o conquer_v and_o spoil_v such_o unbelieve_a thought_n by_o trust_v confident_o on_o christ_n and_o persuade_v yourselves_o by_o faith_n that_o his_o righteousness_n spirit_n glory_n and_o all_o his_o spiritual_a benefit_n be_v you_o and_o he_o dwell_v in_o you_o and_o you_o in_o he_o in_o the_o might_n of_o this_o confidence_n you_o shall_v go_v forth_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o law_n and_o you_o will_v be_v strong_a against_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n through_o christ_n that_o strengthen_v you_o this_o confident_a persuasion_n be_v of_o great_a necessity_n to_o the_o right_a frame_n and_o dispose_v our_o heart_n to_o walk_v according_a to_o our_o new_a state_n in_o christ_n the_o life_n of_o faith_n principal_o consist_v in_o it_o and_o herein_o it_o eminent_o appear_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o hand_n not_o only_o to_o receive_v christ_n but_o also_o to_o work_v by_o he_o and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v effectual_a for_o our_o sanctification_n except_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o some_o assurance_n of_o our_o interest_n in_o christ_n as_o have_v be_v show_v thus_o we_o act_v as_o those_o that_o be_v above_o the_o sphere_n of_o nature_n advance_v to_o union_n and_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n the_o apostle_n maintain_v in_o his_o heart_n a_o persuasion_n that_o christ_n have_v love_v he_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o he_o and_o hereby_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o live_v to_o god_n in_o holiness_n through_o christ_n live_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n he_o teach_v we_o also_o that_o we_o must_v maintain_v the_o like_a persuasion_n if_o we_o will_v walk_v holy_o in_o christ_n we_o must_v know_v that_o our_o old_a man_n be_v crucify_v with_o he_o and_o we_o must_v reckon_v ourselves_o dead_a indeed_o unto_o sin_n and_o alive_a unto_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n rom._n 6.6_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n strong_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o might_n which_o god_n will_v not_o require_v of_o we_o if_o he_o have_v not_o appoint_v the_o mean_n eph._n 6._o christ_n himself_o walk_v in_o a_o constant_a persuasion_n of_o his_o excellent_a state_n he_o set_v the_o lord_n always_o before_o he_o and_o be_v persuade_v that_o because_o god_n be_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n he_o shall_v not_o he_o move_v psal_n 16.8_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v rational_o expect_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v act_n according_a to_o this_o new_a state_n without_o assurance_n that_o he_o be_v in_o it_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o common_a prudence_n in_o all_o worldly_a calling_n and_o condition_n that_o every_o one_o must_v know_v and_o consider_v well_o his_o own_o state_n lest_o he_o shall_v act_v proud_o above_o it_o or_o sordid_o below_o it_o and_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o bring_v some_o to_o a_o right_a estimate_n of_o their_o own_o worldly_a condition_n if_o the_o same_o rule_n be_v observe_v in_o spiritual_a thing_n doubtless_o the_o knowledge_n and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o glory_n and_o excellency_n of_o our_o new_a state_n in_o christ_n will_v more_o elevate_v the_o heart_n of_o believer_n above_o all_o sordid_a salvery_n to_o their_o lust_n and_o enlarge_v they_o to_o run_v cheerful_o the_o way_n of_o god_n commandment_n if_o christian_n know_v their_o own_o strength_n better_o they_o will_v enterprise_v great_a thing_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n this_o knowledge_n be_v difficult_o attain_v it_o be_v only_o by_o faith_n and_o spiritual_a illumination_n the_o best_a know_v but_o in_o part_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o conversation_n of_o believer_n fall_v so_o much_o below_o their_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a call_v 6._o consider_v what_o endowment_n privilege_n or_o property_n of_o your_o new_a state_n be_v most_o meet_a and_o forcible_a to_o incline_v and_o strengthen_v your_o heart_n to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o and_o to_o renounce_v all_o sin_n and_o to_o give_v up_o yourself_o to_o universal_a obedience_n to_o his_o command_n and_o strive_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o they_o that_o you_o may_v attain_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o great_a duties●_n i_o may_v well_o join_v these_o together_o because_o to_o love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n may_v and_o soul_n be_v the_o first_o and_o great_a commandment_n which_o influence_v we_o to_o all_o obedience_n with_o a_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o all_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v contrary_a and_o hateful_a to_o god_n the_o same_o effectual_a mean_n that_o produce_v the_o one_o will_v also_o produce_v the_o other_o and_o holiness_n chief_o consist_v in_o these_o so_o the_o chief_a blessing_n of_o our_o holy_a state_n be_v most_o meet_a and_o forcible_a to_o enable_v we_o for_o the_o immediate_a performance_n of_o they_o and_o be_v to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o this_o end_n by_o faith_n particular_o you_o must_v believe_v steadfast_o that_o all_o your_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o and_o that_o you_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o have_v access_n into_o his_o favour_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v your_o god_n and_o father_n and_o altogether_o love_n to_o you_o and_o your_o all-sufficient_a everlasting_a portion_n and_o happiness_n through_o christ_n such_o apprehension_n as_o these_o do_v present_a god_n as_o a_o very_a lovely_a object_n to_o our_o heart_n and_o do_v thereby_o allure_v and_o win_v our_o affection_n that_o can_v be_v force_v by_o command_n or_o threaten_n but_o must_v be_v sweet_o win_v and_o draw_v by_o allurement_n we_o must_v not_o harbour_v any_o suspicion_n that_o god_n will_v prove_v a_o terrible_a everlasting_a enemy_n to_o we_o if_o we_o will_v love_v he_o for_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n in_o love_n but_o perfect_a love_n cast_v out_o fear_n because_o fear_n have_v torment_n he_o that_o fear_v be_v not_o make_v perfect_a in_o love_n we_o love_v he_o because_o he_o first_o love_v we_o 1_o joh._n 4.18_o 19_o david_n love_v the_o lord_n because_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o be_v his_o strength_n rock_n fortress_n his_o god_n and_o the_o horn_n of_o his_o salvation_n psal_n 18.1_o 2._o love_n that_o cause_v obedience_n unto_o the_o law_n must_v proceed_v from_o a_o good_a conscience_n purge_v from_o sin_n and_o this_o good_a conscience_n must_v proceed_v from_o faith_n unfeigned_a whereby_o we_o apprehend_v the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 1_o tim._n 1.5_o with_o heb._n 9.14_o for_o the_o same_o end_n that_o your_o heart_n may_v be_v right_o fit_v and_o frame_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o principal_a duty_n the_o holy_a scripture_n direct_v you_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o other_o principal_a endowment_n of_o your_o new_a state_n as_o that_o you_o have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 1_o joh._n 1.3_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_a god_n 2_o cor._n 6.16_o that_o you_o live_v by_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.25_o that_o you_o be_v call_v to_o holiness_n and_o create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n that_o god_n will_v sanctisie_n you_o whole_o and_o make_v you_o perfect_a in_o holiness_n at_o the_o last_o 1_o thes_n 5.23_o 24._o eph._n 2.10_o that_o your_o old_a man_n be_v crucify_v with_o christ_n and_o through_o he_o you_o be_v dead_a unto_o sin_n and_o alive_a unto_o god_n and_o be_v make_v free_a from_o sin_n you_o be_v become_v the_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n and_o have_v your_o fruit_n unto_o holiness_n and_o the_o end_v everlasting_a life_n rom._n 6.6_o 22._o you_o be_v dead_a and_o your_o life_n be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n when_o christ_n who_o be_v your_o life_n shall_v appear_v then_o shall_v you_o also_o appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n col._n 3.3_o 4._o such_o persuasion_n as_o these_o when_o they_o be_v deep_o root_v and_o constant_o maintain_v in_o our_o heart_n do_v strong_o arm_v and_o encourage_v we_o to_o practice_v universal_a obedience_n in_o opposition_n to_o every_o sinful_a lust_n because_o we_o look_v upon_o it_o not_o only_o as_o our_o duty_n but_o our_o great_a privilege_n to_o do_v all_o thing_n through_o christ_n strengthen_v of_o we_o and_o god_n do_v certain_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v by_o these_o principle_n because_o they_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o gospel_n
or_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n 2_o cor._n 3.6_o 8._o rom._n 1.16_o 7._o for_o the_o performance_n of_o other_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n you_o be_v to_o consider_v not_o only_o these_o endowment_n privilege_n and_o property_n of_o their_o new_a state_n which_o be_v meet_v and_o forcible_a to_o enable_v you_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o universal_a obedience_n but_o also_o those_o that_o have_v a_o peculiar_a force_n and_o aptitude_n suitable_a to_o the_o special_a nature_n of_o such_o duty_n and_o you_o must_v endeavour_v to_o assure_v yourselves_o of_o they_o by_o faith_n that_o you_o may_v be_v encourage_v and_o strengthen_v to_o perform_v the_o duty_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o some_o instance_n of_o this_o manner_n of_o practice_n in_o several_a duty_n whereby_o you_o may_v the_o better_o understand_v how_o to_o guide_v yourselves_o in_o the_o rest_n and_o as_o to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o first_o table_n if_o you_o will_v draw_v near_o to_o god_n in_o a_o duty_n of_o his_o worship_n with_o a_o true_a heart_n you_o must_v do_v it_o in_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n concern_v your_o enjoyment_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n and_o will_v you_o perform_v the_o great_a duty_n of_o trust_v on_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n ea_v your_o care_n upon_o he_o and_o commit_v the_o disposal_n of_o yourself_o to_o he_o in_o all_o your_o concern_v persuade_v yourself_o through_o christ_n that_o god_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n will_v never_o fail_v you_o nor_o forsake_v you_o that_o he_o take_v a_o fatherly_a care_n of_o you_o that_o he_o will_v withhold_v no_o good_a thing_n from_o you_o and_o will_v make_v all_o thing_n to_o work_v for_o your_o good_a and_o thus_o you_o will_v be_v strong_a and_o courageous_a in_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o duty_n whereas_o if_o you_o live_v in_o a_o mere_a suspense_n concern_v your_o interest_n in_o the_o privilege_n you_o will_v be_v subject_a to_o carnal_a fear_n carp_a care_n in_o despite_n of_o your_o heart_n and_o you_o will_v be_v prone_a to_o trust_v on_o the_o arm_n of_o flesh_n though_o your_o conscience_n tell_v you_o plain_o that_o in_o so_o do_v you_o incur_v the_o heinous_a guilt_n of_o idolatry_n will_v you_o be_v strengthen_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n with_o a_o cheerful_a patience_n in_o bear_v any_o affliction_n and_o death_n itself_o the_o way_n to_o fortify_v yourselves_o be_v to_o believe_v assure_o that_o your_o affliction_n that_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n do_v work_n for_o you_o a_o far_o more_o exceed_v eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n that_o christ_n be_v your_o gain_n in_o death_n and_o life_n that_o his_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o you_o and_o his_o strength_n make_v perfect_a in_o your_o weakness_n and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o you_o be_v able_a and_o will_v at_o last_o make_v you_o more_o than_o conqueror_n over_o all_o evil_a until_o you_o attain_v to_o such_o persuasion_n as_o these_o you_o will_v be_v prone_a to_o fret_v and_o murmur_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o affliction_n and_o to_o use_v indirect_a mean_n to_o deliver_v yourselves_o notwithstanding_o the_o clear_a conviction_n to_o the_o contrary_n will_v you_o limit_v yourselves_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n own_o institution_n in_o his_o worship_n believe_v that_o you_o be_v complete_a in_o christ_n and_o have_v all_o perfection_n of_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o he_o and_o that_o god_n will_v build_v you_o up_o in_o christ_n by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o his_o own_o appointment_n this_o will_v make_v you_o account_v his_o ordinance_n sufficient_a and_o man_n tradition_n and_o invention_n needless_a in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n whereas_o if_o you_o do_v not_o apprehend_v all_o fullness_n in_o christ_n you_o will_v be_v like_o the_o papist_n prone_a to_o catch_v at_o every_o straw_n and_o to_o multiply_v superstitious_a observation_n without_o end_n for_o the_o supply_n of_o your_o spiritual_a want_n will_v you_o confess_v your_o sin_n to_o god_n pray_v to_o he_o and_o praise_v he_o hearty_o for_o his_o benefit_n will_v you_o praise_v he_o for_o affliction_n as_o well_o as_o prosperity_n believe_v assure_o that_o god_n be_v faithful_a and_o just_a to_o forgive_v your_o sin_n through_o christ_n that_o you_o be_v make_v a_o holy_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v spiritual_a sacrisices_n of_o prayer_n and_o praise_n that_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o that_o god_n hear_v your_o prayer_n and_o will_v fulfil_v they_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v good_a for_o you_o and_o that_o all_o god_n way_n be_v mercy_n and_o truth_n towards_o you_o whether_o he_o prosper_v or_o afflict_v you_o in_o this_o life_n if_o you_o be_v altogether_o in_o doubt_n or_o otherwise_o persuade_v concern_v these_o privilege_n all_o your_o confession_n prayer_n and_o praise_n will_v be_v but_o heartless_a lip-labour_n slavish_a or_o pharisaical_a work_n in_o like_a manner_n you_o will_v be_v enable_v to_o hear_v and_o receive_v the_o word_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o meditate_v on_o it_o with_o delight_n and_o you_o will_v be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o strictness_n and_o spirituality_n of_o the_o command_v of_o god_n and_o to_o try_v and_o examine_v your_o way_n impartial_o by_o they_o if_o you_o believe_v assure_o that_o the_o word_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v your_o great_a physician_n willing_a and_o able_a to_o heal_v you_o be_v the_o case_n never_o so_o bad_a and_o where_o your_o sin_n abound_v his_o grace_n towards_o you_o do_v so_o much_o the_o more_o abound_v whereas_o without_o these_o comfortable_a apprehension_n all_o the_o work_n of_o hear_v meditation_n self-examination_n will_v be_v but_o uncouth_a heartless_a work_n and_o they_o will_v be_v perform_v negligent_o and_o by_o half_n or_o hypocritical_o and_o out_o of_o slavish_a fear_n with_o much_o reluctancy_n without_o any_o good_a will_n or_o readiness_n of_o mind_n so_o also_o for_o the_o right_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n you_o will_v find_v yourselves_o much_o strengthen_v by_o believe_v that_o you_o may_v have_v communion_n with_o god_n and_o christ_n in_o they_o and_o that_o you_o have_v a_o great_a highpriest_n to_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o your_o holy_a thing_n and_o to_o make_v you_o for_o ever_o accept_v before_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o same_o way_n you_o be_v to_o apply_v yourselves_o to_o all_o duty_n towards_o your_o neighbour_n require_v in_o the_o second_o table_n of_o the_o law_n by_o act_v in_o a_o persuasion_n of_o such_o privilege_n of_o your_o new_a estate_n as_o have_v a_o peculiar_a force_n to_o encourage_v and_o strengthen_v you_o for_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o that_o you_o may_v love_v your_o neighbour_n as_o yourself_o and_o do_v to_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n as_o you_o will_v he_o shall_v do_v to_o you_o without_o partiality_n and_o self-seeking_a that_o you_o may_v give_v he_o his_o due_a honour_n and_o abstain_v from_o injure_v he_o in_o his_o life_n chastity_n worldly_a estate_n good_a name_n or_o from_o covet_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v he_o according_a to_o the_o several_a command_n in_o the_o second_o table_n of_o the_o decalogue_n you_o must_v walk_v in_o a_o persuasion_n not_o only_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v just_a and_o equitable_a towards_o your_o fellow-creature_n and_o that_o you_o be_v strict_o bind_v to_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o will_n of_o your_o heavenly_a father_n that_o have_v beget_v you_o according_a to_o his_o own_o image_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n and_o have_v give_v you_o his_o spirit_n that_o you_o may_v be_v like-minded_n to_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o they_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n who_o dwell_v in_o you_o and_o you_o in_o he_o that_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v kind_a tender-hearted_a long-suffering_a full_a of_o goodness_n to_o man_n whether_o good_a or_o bad_a friend_n or_o enemy_n poor_a or_o rich_a and_o that_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n not_o to_o destroy_v but_o to_o save_v and_o that_o you_o be_v of_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o the_o injury_n do_v to_o you_o by_o your_o neighbour_n can_v do_v you_o no_o harm_n and_o you_o need_v not_o seek_v any_o good_a for_o yourselves_o by_o injure_v they_o because_o you_o have_v all_o desirable_a happiness_n in_o christ_n and_o all_o thing_n though_o intend_v by_o your_o enemy_n for_o your_o hurt_n certain_o work_v for_o your_o good_a through_o christ_n such_o apprehension_n as_o these_o wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n do_v certain_o beget_v in_o we_o a_o right_a frame_n of_o spirit_n thorough_o furnish_v for_o every_o good_a work_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n
likewise_o your_o heart_n will_v be_v purify_v to_o unfeigned_a love_n of_o the_o brethren_n in_o christ_n and_o you_o will_v walk_v towards_o they_o with_o all_o lowliness_n meekness_n long-suffering_a forbear_v one_o another_o in_o love_n if_o you_o maintain_v a_o steadfast_a belief_n and_o persuasion_n of_o those_o manifold_a bond_n of_o love_n whereby_o you_o be_v inseparable_o join_v with_o they_o through_o christ_n as_o particular_o that_o there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n of_o your_o call_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o you_o all_o final_o you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o abstain_v from_o all_o fleshly_a and_o worldly_a lust_n that_o war_n against_o the_o soul_n and_o hinder_v all_o godliness_n by_o a_o assure_a persuasion_n not_o mere_o that_o gluttony_n drunkenness_n lechery_n be_v filthy_a swinish_a abomination_n and_o that_o the_o pleasure_n profit_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o world_n be_v vain_a empty_a thing_n but_o that_o you_o be_v crucify_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o world_n and_o quicken_v raise_v and_o set_v in_o heavenly_a place_n through_o christ_n and_o that_o you_o have_v pleasure_n profit_n honour_n in_o christ_n to_o which_o the_o best_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v compare_v and_o that_o you_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n the_o temple_n of_o his_o spirit_n citizen_n of_o heaven_n child_n of_o the_o day_n not_o of_o the_o night_n nor_o of_o darkness_n so_o that_o it_o be_v below_o your_o state_n and_o dignity_n to_o practice_v deed_n of_o darkness_n and_o mind_n fleshly_a worldly_a thing_n thus_o i_o have_v give_v instance_n enough_o to_o stir_v you_o up_o to_o acquaint_v yourselves_o with_o the_o manifold_a endowment_n privilege_n property_n of_o your_o new_a state_n in_o christ_n as_o they_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o your_o salvation_n whereby_o the_o new_a nature_n be_v fit_v for_o holy_a operation_n as_o the_o common_a nature_n of_o man_n be_v furnish_v with_o the_o endowment_n necessary_a for_o those_o function_n and_o operation_n to_o which_o it_o be_v design_v and_o also_o to_o stir_v you_o up_o to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o by_o faith_n as_o they_o serve_v to_o strengthen_v you_o either_o for_o universal_a obedience_n or_o for_o particular_a duty_n and_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o walk_v your_o heart_n will_v be_v comfort_v and_o establish_v in_o every_o good_a word_n and_o work_n and_o you_o will_v grow_v in_o holiness_n until_o you_o attain_v to_o perfection_n in_o jesus_n christ_n 8._o if_o you_o endeavour_v to_o grow_v in_o grace_n and_o in_o all_o holiness_n trust_v assure_o that_o god_n will_v enable_v you_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o walk_v to_o do_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o his_o glory_n and_o your_o own_o everlasting_a salvation_n and_o that_o he_o will_v gracious_o accept_v of_o that_o obedience_n through_o christ_n which_o you_o be_v enable_v to_o perform_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o your_o faith_n and_o pardon_v your_o fail_n though_o you_o offend_v in_o many_o thing_n and_o fall_v short_a of_o many_o other_o as_o to_z degree_n of_o holiness_n and_o high_a act_n of_o obedience_n and_o therefore_o attempt_v not_o the_o performance_n of_o duty_n in_o any_o other_o way_n though_o you_o can_v yet_o attain_v to_o do_v so_o much_o as_o you_o will_v in_o this_o way_n this_o be_v a_o necessary_a instruction_n to_o establish_v we_o in_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o manifold_a fail_n and_o defect_n may_v not_o move_v we_o either_o to_o despair_n or_o to_o return_v to_o the_o use_n of_o carnal_a principle_n and_o mean_n for_o help_v against_o our_o corruption_n as_o account_v this_o way_n of_o live_v and_o act_v by_o faith_n to_o be_v in-sufficient_a for_o our_o sanctification_n and_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n paul_n exhort_v the_o galatian_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n though_o the_o flesh_n lust_n against_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o they_o can_v do_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o will_v gal._n 5_o 10_o 17._o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o though_o the_o law_n require_v of_o we_o the_o utmost_a perfection_n of_o holiness_n yet_o the_o gospel_n make_v a_o allowance_n for_o our_o weakness_n and_o christ_n be_v so_o meek_a and_o lowly_a in_o heart_n that_o he_o accept_v of_o that_o which_o our_o weak_a faith_n can_v attain_v to_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o do_v not_o exact_a or_o expect_v any_o more_o of_o we_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o our_o salvation_n until_o we_o grow_v strong_a in_o grace_n god_n show_v his_o great_a indulgence_n to_o his_o people_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o moses_n the_o lawgiver_n suffer_v they_o because_o of_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o put_v away_o their_o wife_n though_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o mat._n 19.8_o and_o also_o in_o tolerate_v the_o customary_a practice_n of_o polygamy_n though_o christ_n will_v not_o tolerate_v the_o continuance_n of_o such_o practice_n in_o his_o church_n since_o his_o spirit_n be_v more_o plentiful_o pour_v forth_o under_o the_o gospel_n yet_o he_o be_v as_o forward_o as_o ever_o to_o bear_v with_o the_o fail_n of_o his_o weak_a saint_n that_o desire_v to_o obey_v he_o sincere_o we_o have_v another_o instance_n of_o god_n indulgence_n more_o full_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n in_o his_o command_v that_o the_o fearful_a and_o fainthearted_a shall_v not_o be_v force_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o battle_n against_o their_o enemy_n but_o suffer_v to_o return_v home_o to_o their_o house_n though_o sight_v in_o battle_n against_o enemy_n without_o fear_n and_o faint-heartedness_n be_v a_o duty_n that_o god_n do_v much_o exercise_v his_o people_n in_o at_o that_o time_n deut._n 20.3_o 8._o so_o under_o the_o gospel_n though_o it_o be_v a_o eminent_a part_n of_o christ_n service_n to_o endure_v the_o great_a fight_n of_o affliction_n and_o death_n itself_o courageous_o for_o his_o name_n sake_n yet_o if_o any_o be_v so_o weak_a in_o faith_n that_o they_o have_v not_o sufficient_a courage_n to_o venture_v into_o the_o battle_n no_o doubt_n but_o christ_n allow_v they_o to_o make_v use_n of_o any_o honest_a mean_n whereby_o they_o may_v escape_v the_o hand_n of_o persecutor_n with_o safety_n to_o their_o holy_a profession_n he_o will_v accept_v they_o in_o this_o weak_a kind_n of_o service_n and_o will_v approve_v of_o they_o better_o than_o if_o they_o shall_v hazard_v a_o denial_n of_o his_o name_n by_o venture_v themselves_o upon_o the_o trial_n of_o martyrdom_n when_o they_o may_v have_v escape_v it_o peter_n come_v off_o with_o sin_n and_o shame_n by_o venture_v beyond_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o faith_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o persecutor_n when_o he_o go_v after_o christ_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n hall_n whereas_o he_o shall_v rather_o have_v make_v use_n of_o that_o indulgent_a dismission_n that_o christ_n give_v to_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o disciple_n let_v these_o go_v their_o way_n joh._n 18.8_o christ_n deal_v with_o his_o people_n as_o a_o good_a careful_a shepherd_n that_o will_v not_o over-drive_a his_o sheep_n he_o gather_v his_o lamb_n with_o his_o arm_n and_o carry_v they_o in_o his_o bosom_n and_o will_v gentle_o lead_v those_o that_o be_v with_o young_a isa_n 40.11_o he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o disciple_n urge_v rigorous_o upon_o the_o duty_n of_o fast_v when_o their_o spirit_n be_v unfit_a for_o it_o because_o he_o know_v that_o impose_v duty_n above_o their_o strength_n be_v like_o put_v a_o piece_n of_o new_a cloth_n into_o a_o old_a garment_n and_o new_a wine_n into_o old_a bottle_n which_o spoil_v all_o at_o last_o mat._n 9.14_o 17._o that_o precept_n of_o solomon_n be_v not_o righteous_a overmuch_o prov._n 7.10_o be_v very_o useful_a and_o necessary_a if_o right_o understand_v we_o be_v to_o beware_v of_o be_v too_o rigorous_a in_o exact_v righteousness_n of_o ourselves_o and_o other_o beyond_o the_o measure_n of_o faith_n and_o grace_n overdo_v common_o prove_v undo_n child_n that_o venture_v on_o their_o foot_n beyond_o their_o strength_n have_v many_o a_o fall_n and_o so_o have_v babe_n in_o christ_n when_o they_o venture_v unnecessary_o upon_o such_o duty_n as_o be_v beyond_o the_o strength_n of_o their_o faith_n we_o shall_v be_v content_a at_o present_a to_o do_v the_o best_a that_o we_o can_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n though_o we_o know_v that_o other_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v much_o better_o and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o despise_v the_o day_n of_o small_a thing_n but_o to_o praise_n god_n that_o he_o work_v in_o we_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v well-pleasing_a in_o his_o sight_n hope_v that_o he_o will_v sanctify_v we_o throughout_o and_o
they_o know_v at_o what_o time_n and_o by_o what_o text_n of_o scripture_n they_o be_v convert_v and_o can_v make_v large_a discourse_n of_o the_o working_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o heart_n and_o be_v prone_a to_o talk_v unreasonable_o with_o vain-glorying_a of_o their_o own_o experience_n when_o at_o last_o all_o their_o experience_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o evidence_n that_o they_o ever_o attain_v to_o the_o least_o measure_n of_o true_a save_a faith_n therefore_o that_o we_o may_v not_o unjust_o condemn_v or_o justify_v our_o faith_n by_o proceed_v on_o in-sufficient_a evidence_n in_o its_o trial_n our_o best_a way_n be_v to_o examine_v it_o by_o the_o inseparable_a property_n of_o a_o true_a save_a faith_n by_o put_v to_o ourselves_o such_o question_n as_o these_o be_v we_o make_v thorough_o sensible_a of_o our_o sinfulness_n and_o of_o the_o deadness_n and_o misery_n of_o our_o natural_a state_n so_o as_o to_o despair_v absolute_o of_o ever_o attain_v to_o any_o righteousness_n holiness_n or_o true_a happiness_n while_o we_o continue_v in_o it_o be_v the_o eye_n of_o our_o understanding_n enlighten_v to_o see_v the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o alone_a sufficiency_n and_o all-sufficiency_n of_o his_o grace_n for_o our_o salvation_n do_v we_o prefer_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o above_o all_o thing_n and_o desire_v it_o with_o our_o whole_a heart_n as_o our_o only_a happiness_n whatsoever_o we_o may_v suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n do_v we_o desire_v with_o our_o whole_a heart_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o power_n and_o practice_n of_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n do_v our_o heart_n come_v to_o christ_n and_o lay_v hold_v on_o he_o for_o salvation_n by_o trust_v he_o only_o and_o endeavour_v to_o trust_v on_o he_o confident_o notwithstanding_o all_o fear_n and_o doubt_n that_o assault_v we_o if_o you_o find_v in_o yourself_o a_o faith_n that_o have_v these_o property_n though_o as_o small_a as_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n and_o oppose_v with_o much_o unbelief_n and_o manifold_a corruption_n in_o your_o soul_n you_o may_v conclude_v that_o you_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n at_o present_a and_o that_o your_o remain_a work_n be_v to_o continue_v and_o grow_v in_o it_o more_o and_o more_o and_o to_o walk_v worthy_a of_o it_o you_o shall_v also_o examine_v the_o fruit_n of_o your_o faith_n and_o try_v whether_o you_o can_v show_v your_o faith_n by_o your_o work_n as_o you_o be_v teach_v jam._n 2.18_o that_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o your_o judgement_n concern_v it_o and_o though_o it_o be_v true_a as_o i_o have_v note_v that_o doubt_n concern_v your_o faith_n will_v breed_v doubt_v concern_v the_o sincerity_n of_o other_o qualification_n that_o be_v fruit_n thereof_o yet_o possible_o you_o may_v get_v such_o clear_a evidence_n of_o your_o sincerity_n as_o may_v overcome_v and_o expel_v all_o your_o doubt_n and_o here_o you_o be_v not_o only_o to_o inquire_v whether_o your_o inclination_n purpose_n affection_n and_o action_n be_v material_o good_a and_o holy_a but_o also_o by_o what_o principle_n they_o be_v breed_v and_o influence_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o slavish_a fear_n of_o hell_n and_o mercenary_a hope_n of_o get_v heaven_n by_o your_o work_n which_o be_v legal_a and_o carnal_a principle_n that_o can_v never_o breed_v true_a holiness_n or_o by_o gospel_n principle_n as_o by_o love_n to_o god_n because_o god_n have_v love_v you_o first_o and_o to_o christ_n because_o he_o have_v dye_v and_o by_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n as_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o dependence_n on_o god_n to_o sanctify_v you_o by_o his_o spirit_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n remember_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o cor._n 3.6_o and_o the_o spirit_n will_v sanctify_v we_o not_o by_o legal_a but_o by_o gospel_n principles_n take_v notice_n further_o that_o you_o need_v not_o trouble_v yourself_o to_o find_v out_o a_o multitude_n of_o mark_n and_o sign_n of_o true_a grace_n if_o you_o can_v find_v a_o few_o good_a one_o particular_o you_o may_v know_v that_o you_o be_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n if_o you_o love_v the_o brethren_n 1_o joh._n 3.14_o i_o e._n if_o you_o love_v all_o who_o you_o can_v in_o charity_n judge_v to_o be_v true_a believer_n and_o that_o because_o they_o be_v true_a believer_n and_o for_o the_o truth_n sake_n that_o dwell_v in_o they_o as_o solomon_n discern_v the_o true_a mother_n of_o the_o child_n by_o her_o affection_n towards_o her_o child_n so_o the_o mother_n grace_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v discern_v by_o the_o love_n that_o it_o breed_v in_o we_o towards_o all_o true_a believer_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n happy_a be_v you_o if_o you_o can_v find_v so_o much_o evidence_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o your_o faith_n as_o may_v enable_v you_o to_o express_v your_o sincerity_n in_o these_o moderate_a term_n pray_v for_o we_o for_o we_o trust_v we_o have_v a_o good_a conscience_n in_o all_o thing_n willing_a to_o live_v honest_o heb._n 13.18_o 3._o meditation_n on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o very_o great_a use_n and_o advantage_n for_o the_o attainment_n and_o practice_n of_o holiness_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o duty_n whereby_o the_o soul_n do_v feed_v and_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o word_n as_o its_o spiritual_a food_n and_o dige_v it_o and_o turn_v it_o into_o nourishment_n whereby_o we_o be_v strengthen_v for_o every_o good_a work_n our_o soul_n be_v satisfy_v therewith_o as_o with_o marrow_n and_o fatness_n when_o we_o remember_v god_n upon_o our_o bed_n and_o meditate_v on_o he_o in_o the_o night-watche_n psal_n 68.5_o 6._o the_o new_a nature_n may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o mind_n rom._n 7.25_o because_o it_o live_v and_o act_v by_o mind_v of_o and_o meditate_v on_o spiritual_a thing_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n to_o be_v practise_v not_o only_o at_o some_o limit_a time_n but_o all_o the_o day_n psal_n 119.97_o yea_o day_n and_o night_n psal_n 1.2_o even_o in_o our_o ordinary_a employment_n at_o home_n and_o abroad_o a_o habitual_a knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n will_v not_o profit_v we_o without_o a_o active_a mind_v it_o by_o frequent_a meditation_n some_o think_v that_o much_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o needful_a where_o a_o people_n be_v already_o bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o they_o that_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o word_n find_v by_o experience_n that_o their_o spiritual_a life_n be_v maintain_v and_o increase_v by_o often_o mind_v the_o same_o word_n and_o therefore_o as_o new_o bear_v babe_n they_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o 1_o pet._n 2.2_o and_o will_v by_o the_o preacher_n be_v put_v often_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v feed_v upon_o they_o by_o meditation_n though_o they_o know_v they_o already_o and_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o present_a truth_n 2_o pet._n 1.12_o but_o here_o our_o great_a skill_n and_o chief_a concernment_n lie_v in_o practise_v this_o duty_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o that_o it_o may_v be_v subservient_fw-fr and_o not_o at_o all_o opposite_a to_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n we_o must_v not_o rely_v upon_o the_o performance_n of_o a_o daily_a task_n of_o meditation_n as_o a_o work_n of_o righteousness_n for_o the_o procurement_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n instead_o of_o rely_v on_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n as_o indeed_o we_o be_v prone_a to_o do_v to_o catch_v at_o any_o straw_n rather_o than_o to_o trust_v only_o on_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o the_o end_n of_o our_o meditation_n must_v not_o be_v mere_a speculation_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o rather_o the_o vigorous_a press_v it_o upon_o our_o conscience_n and_o the_o stir_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o and_o in_o stir_v up_o ourselves_o to_o holy_a practice_n we_o must_v wary_o observe_v how_o far_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v powerful_a and_o effectual_a for_o the_o attainment_n of_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v make_v use_n of_o they_o according_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v as_o too_o many_o do_v yea_o and_o some_o great_a master_n in_o the_o art_n of_o meditation_n that_o we_o can_v bring_v our_o heart_n effectual_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o holiness_n and_o can_v work_v strange_a metamorphosis_n and_o work_v or_o frame_v in_o our_o heart_n any_o holy_a qualification_n or_o virtue_n mere_o by_o work_v in_o ourselves_o strong_a apprehension_n of_o god_n eternal_a power_n and_o godhead_n his_o
sovereign_a authority_n omniscience_n perfect_a holiness_n exact_a justice_n the_o equity_n of_o his_o law_n and_o reasonableness_n of_o our_o obedience_n to_o it_o the_o unspeakable_a happiness_n prepare_v for_o the_o godly_a and_o misery_n for_o the_o wicked_a to_o all_o eternity_n meditation_n on_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o be_v indeed_o very_o useful_a to_o press_v upon_o our_o conscience_n the_o strictness_n of_o our_o obligation_n to_o holy_a duty_n and_o to_o move_v we_o to_o go_v by_o faith_n to_o christ_n for_o life_n and_o strength_n to_o perform_v they_o but_o that_o we_o may_v receive_v this_o life_n and_o strength_n whereby_o we_o be_v enable_v for_o immediate_a performance_n we_o must_v meditate_v believe_o on_o christ_n save_a benefit_n as_o they_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o only_a doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o our_o salvation_n and_o whereby_o the_o quicken_a spirit_n be_v minister_v to_o we_o and_o that_o be_v able_a to_o build_v we_o up_o and_o give_v we_o a_o inheritance_n among_o all_o they_o which_o be_v sanctify_v rom._n 1.16_o 2_o cor._n 3.6_o act._n 20.32_o you_o must_v take_v special_a care_n to_o act_v faith_n in_o your_o meditation_n mix_v the_o word_n of_o god_n grace_n with_o it_o or_o else_o it_o will_v not_o profit_v you_o heb._n 4.2_o and_o if_o you_o set_v the_o love_a kindness_n of_o god_n frequent_o before_o your_o eye_n by_o meditate_v on_o it_o believe_o you_o will_v be_v strengthen_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o truth_n psal_n 26.2_o and_o by_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o will_v be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n even_o as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o this_o kind_n of_o meditation_n be_v sweet_a and_o delightful_a to_o those_o that_o be_v guide_v to_o it_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n and_o it_o need_v not_o the_o help_n of_o such_o artificial-method_n as_o the_o vulgar_a can_v easy_o learn_v you_o may_v let_v your_o thought_n run_v in_o it_o at_o liberty_n without_o confine_v they_o to_o any_o rule_n of_o method_n you_o will_v find_v your_o soul_n much_o enliven_v by_o it_o and_o enrich_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o can_v be_v effect_v by_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o meditation_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o methodical_a and_o curious_o frame_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o art_n 4._o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o promote_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v make_v use_n of_o according_a to_o its_o nature_n and_o institution_n because_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n as_o circumcision_n be_v former_o rom._n 4.11_o but_o then_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o make_v it_o a_o seal_n of_o the_o contrary_a righteousness_n of_o work_n as_o the_o carnal_a jew_n do_v that_o seek_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o as_o many_o christian_n do_v that_o transform_v the_o new_a covenant_n into_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n require_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o justification_n into_o which_o new_a devise_v covenant_n they_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v enter_v by_o their_o baptism_n i_o may_v say_v of_o baptism_n thus_o pervert_v and_o abuse_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o circumcision_n baptism_n very_o profit_v if_o thou_o keep_v the_o law_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o breaker_n of_o the_o law_n thy_o baptism_n be_v make_v no_o baptism_n rom._n 2.26_o if_o thou_o be_v baptize_v so_o long_o as_o thou_o continue_v in_o the_o abuse_n of_o that_o holy_a ordinance_n christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o christ_n be_v become_v of_o no_o effect_n to_o you_o you_o be_v all_o fall_v from_o grace_n gal._n 3.2.4_o beware_v also_o of_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o baptism_n and_o put_v it_o in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v who_o hold_v that_o it_o confer_v grace_n by_o the_o very_a work_n that_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o and_o as_o many_o ignorant_a people_n do_v that_o trust_v rather_o on_o their_o baptism_n than_o on_o christ_n like_v to_o the_o pharisee_n who_o place_v their_o confidence_n on_o circumcision_n and_o other_o external_a privilege_n phil._n 3.4_o 5._o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o god_n be_v not_o well_o please_v with_o many_o that_o be_v baptize_v 1_o cor._n 10.2_o 5._o and_o the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o he_o will_v punish_v the_o baptise_a with_o the_o unbaptised_a as_o well_o as_o the_o circumcise_a with_o the_o uncircumcised_a jer._n 9.25_o beware_v also_o of_o advance_v baptism_n to_o a_o equal_a partnership_n with_o faith_n in_o your_o salvation_n as_o some_o do_v who_o account_v all_o baptism_n null_n and_o void_a beside_o that_o which_o be_v administer_v to_o person_n grow_v up_o to_o year_n of_o discretion_n and_o they_o that_o refuse_v to_o be_v rebaptise_v at_o those_o year_n be_v to_o be_v account_v alien_n from_o the_o true_a church_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o salvation_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v null_a and_o void_a yet_o the_o want_n of_o true_a baptism_n will_v be_v no_o damn_v matter_n to_o those_o that_o be_v otherwise_o persuade_v circumcision_n be_v as_o necessary_a as_o baptism_n in_o its_o time_n and_o yet_o the_o israelite_n omit_v it_o for_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n without_o fear_v that_o any_o will_v fall_v short_a of_o salvation_n for_o want_n of_o it_o john_n 5.6_o 7._o many_o precious_a saint_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o persecution_n have_v go_v to_o heaven_n through_o a_o baptism_n of_o suffer_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o have_v opportunity_n to_o be_v baptise_a with_o water_n and_o in_o those_o ancient_a time_n when_o the_o custom_n of_o defer_v baptism_n too_o much_o prevail_v we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v that_o none_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o defer_v that_o ordinance_n or_o neglect_v it_o take_v notice_n further_o that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o avoid_v the_o pernicious_a error_n of_o those_o that_o pervert_v baptism_n contrary_a to_o its_o institution_n but_o you_o must_v be_v also_o diligent_a in_o the_o improve_n of_o it_o to_o the_o end_n for_o which_o it_o be_v institute_v and_o here_o let_v i_o desire_v you_o to_o put_v the_o question_n serious_o to_o your_o soul_n what_o good_a use_v you_o do_v make_v of_o your_o baptism_n how_o often_o or_o seldom_o do_v you_o think_v upon_o it_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n of_o christian_n yea_o it_o may_v be_v fear_v many_o sincere_a convert_v do_v so_o little_o think_v upon_o their_o own_o baptism_n and_o study_v to_o make_v a_o due_a improvement_n of_o it_o that_o its_o of_o no_o more_o profit_n to_o their_o soul_n than_o if_o they_o never_o have_v be_v baptise_a yea_o their_o sin_n be_v the_o more_o aggravate_v by_o render_v such_o a_o ordinance_n of_o none_o effect_v to_o their_o soul_n through_o their_o own_o gross_a neglect_n though_o baptism_n be_v administer_v to_o we_o but_o once_o in_o our_o life_n yet_o we_o ought_v frequent_o to_o reflect_v upon_o it_o and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n to_o put_v the_o question_n to_o ourselves_o into_o what_o be_v we_o baptise_a act_n 19.2_o what_o this_o ordinance_n seal_n what_o do_v it_o engage_v we_o to_o and_o according_o we_o must_v stir_v up_o and_o strengthen_v ourselves_o by_o our_o baptism_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o the_o grace_n which_o it_o seal_v to_o we_o and_o to_o fulfil_v its_o engagement_n we_o shall_v often_o remember_v that_o we_o be_v make_v christ_n disciple_n by_o baptism_n and_o engage_v to_o hear_v he_o rather_o than_o moses_n and_o to_o believe_v on_o he_o for_o our_o salvation_n as_o john_n baptize_v with_o the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n say_v to_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v on_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v after_o he_o i._n e._n on_o christ_n jesus_n we_o shall_v remember_v that_o our_o baptism_n seal_v our_o put_v on_o of_o christ_n and_o our_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o our_o being_n no_o long_o under_o the_o former_a schoolmaster_n the_o law_n gal._n 3.25_o 26_o 27._o and_o that_o it_o seal_v to_o we_o the_o put_n off_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n and_o our_o burial_n and_o resurrection_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o forgive_n of_o our_o trespass_n col._n 2.12_o 13._o our_o be_v make_v member_n of_o one_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 12.12_o 13._o we_o may_v find_v by_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o which_o be_v more_o full_o discover_v in_o the_o gospel_n
slavish_a fear_n in_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o faith_n in_o this_o as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o holy_a ordinance_n and_o we_o be_v to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o spiritual_a feast_n as_o the_o jew_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v in_o their_o solemn_a feast_n deut._n 16.14_o 15._o there_o be_v other_o abuse_n of_o this_o ordinance_n like_a to_o those_o of_o baptism_n foremention_v whereby_o it_o be_v render_v opposite_a rather_o than_o subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n some_o put_v it_o in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n by_o trust_v on_o it_o as_o a_o work_n of_o righteousness_n for_o the_o procure_n of_o god_n favour_n or_o a_o ordinance_n sufficient_a to_o confer_v grace_n to_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o very_a work_n wrought_v other_o make_v it_o so_o necessary_a that_o they_o account_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o sufficient_a without_o it_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v partake_v of_o it_o if_o they_o can_v possible_o though_o it_o be_v in_o a_o disorderly_a manner_n upon_o their_o sick-bed_n when_o they_o be_v in_o fear_n of_o death_n as_o their_o viaticum_fw-la the_o papist_n do_v horrible_o idolise_v it_o by_o their_o figment_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o their_o breaden_a god_n and_o their_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a we_o ought_v wary_o to_o conceive_v that_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o we_o with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o a_o spiritual_a mysterious_a manner_n by_o the_o unsearchable_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unite_n christ_n and_o we_o together_o by_o faith_n without_o any_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o outward_a element_n 6._o prayer_n be_v to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o as_o a_o mean_n of_o live_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o new_a man._n and_o it_o be_v the_o make_v our_o request_n with_o supplication_n and_o thankfgiving_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v use_v so_o as_o a_o eminent_a mean_n appear_v because_o god_n require_v it_o 1_o thess_n 5.17_o rom._n 12.12_o it_o be_v our_o priestly_a work_n 1_o pet._n 2.5_o compare_v with_o psal_n 141.2_o and_o the_o property_n of_o saint_n 1_o cor._n 1.2_o and_o god_n be_v a_o god_n hear_v prayer_n psal_n 65.2_o god_n will_v be_v pray_v to_o by_o his_o people_n for_o the_o benefit_n that_o he_o be_v mind_v to_o bestow_v upon_o they_o when_o once_o he_o have_v enable_v they_o to_o pray_v though_o at_o first_o he_o be_v find_v of_o they_o that_o seek_v he_o not_o ezek._n 36.27_o 37._o phil._n 1.19_o 20._o that_o he_o may_v prepare_v they_o for_o thanksgiving_n and_o make_v benefit_n double_a benefit_n to_o they_o psal_n 66.16_o 18_o 19_o and_o 50.15_o 2_o cor._n 1.10_o 11._o though_o his_o will_v be_v not_o change_v by_o this_o mean_n yet_o it_o be_v accomplish_v ordinary_o and_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o accomplish_v it_o this_o way_n and_o therefore_o trust_v assure_o shall_v not_o make_v we_o neglect_v but_o rather_o perform_v this_o duty_n 2_o sam._n 7.27_o christ_n the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n by_o which_o justification_n and_o sanctification_n be_v promise_v be_v also_o the_o mediator_n for_o acceptance_n of_o our_o prayer_n heb._n 4.15_o 16._o the_o spirit_n that_o sanctifi_v we_o begette●h_v we_o in_o chest_n show_v the_o thing_n of_o christ_n to_o we_o be_v a_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n zech._n 12.10_o gal._n 4.6_o he_o be_v as_o fire_n inslame_v the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o to_o mount_v upward_o in_o prayer_n to_o god_n prayerless_a people_n be_v dead_a to_o god_n if_o they_o be_v child_n of_o zion_n yet_o they_o be_v but_o still-born_a dead_a child_n that_o cry_v not_o act_n 9.11_o not_o write_v among_o the_o live_n in_o jerusalem_n heathen_n in_o nature_n though_o christian_n in_o name_n jer._n 10.25_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n so_o great_a that_o it_o be_v put_v for_o all_o the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o a_o fundamental_a duty_n which_o if_o it_o be_v do_v the_o rest_n will_v be_v do_v well_o and_o not_o without_o it_o and_o other_o ordinance_n of_o worship_n be_v help_n to_o it_o isa_n 56.7_o it_o be_v the_o great_a mean_n whereby_o faith_n do_v expert_a itself_o to_o perform_v its_o whole_a work_n and_o pour_v itself_o forth_o in_o all_o holy_a desire_n and_o affection_n psal_n 62_o 8._o and_o so_o yield_v a_o sweet_a savour_n as_o mary_n box_n of_o precious_a spicknard_n mark_v 14.3_o john_n 12.3_o and_o so_o the_o same_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o faith_n and_o prayer_n rom._n 10.11_o 12_o 13._o it_o be_v our_o continual_a incense_n and_o sacrifice_n whereby_o we_o offer_v ourselves_o heart_n assection_n and_o life_n to_o god_n psal_n 141.2_o we_o act_v all_o grace_n in_o it_o and_o must_v act_v it_o this_o way_n or_o else_o we_o be_v not_o likely_a to_o act_v it_o any_o other_o way_n and_o as_o we_o act_n grace_n so_o we_o obtain_v grace_n by_o it_o and_o all_o holiness_n psal_n 138.3_o luk._n 11.13_o heb._n 4.16_o psal_n 81.10_o our_o riches_n come_v in_o by_o it_o israel_n prevail_v while_o moses_n hold_v up_o his_o hand_n exod._n 17._o by_o prayer_n hannah_n be_v strengthen_v against_o her_o sorrow_n 1_o sam._n 1.15_o 18._o peace_n be_v continue_v phil._n 4.6_o 7._o the_o disorder_a soul_n set_v in_o order_n by_o it_o as_o hannah_n 1_o sam._n 1._o psal_n 32.1_o 5._o incense_n be_v still_o burn_v while_o the_o lamp_n be_v dress_v exod._n 30.7_o 8._o it_o be_v add_v to_o the_o spiritual_a armoury_n not_o as_o a_o particular_a piece_n of_o it_o but_o as_o a_o mean_n of_o put_v on_o all_o and_o make_v use_n of_o all_o aright_o that_o we_o may_v stand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n eph._n 6.18_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o transfigure_v we_o into_o the_o likeness_n of_o christ_n in_o holiness_n and_o make_v our_o spiritual_a face_n to_o shine_v as_o christ_n be_v transfigure_v bodily_a whilst_o he_o pray_v luk._n 9.29_o and_o moses_n his_o face_n shine_v whilst_o he_o talk_v with_o god_n exod._n 34.29_o hence_o the_o frequent_a use_n of_o this_o duty_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o eph._n 6.18_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d on_o all_o season_n and_o opportunity_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o public_a with_o the_o congregation_n act_v 2.42_o &_o 10.30_o 31._o solemn_a continue_a act_n of_o prayer_n shall_v be_v mat._n 6.1_o yea_o several_a time_n as_o morning_n and_o evening_n sacrifice_n dan._n 6.10_o psal_n 92.2_o or_o thrice_o psal_n 55.17_o beside_o special_a occasion_n jam._n 5.13_o and_o brief_a ejaculation_n that_o hinder_v not_o other_o business_n psal_n 129.8_o 2_o sam._n 15.31_o nch._n 2.4_o prayer_n shall_v be_v solemn_a in_o our_o closet_n mat._n 6.6_o in_o family_n act_n 10.30_o 31._o and_o as_o sacrifice_n be_v multiply_v on_o the_o sabbath-day_n and_o day_n of_o atonement_n and_o at_o other_o appoint_a season_n numb_a 〈…〉_o the_o continual_a burnt-offering_a so_o ought_v 〈…〉_o in_o a_o word_n a_o christian_n ought_v to_o give_v up_o himself_o eminent_o to_o this_o duty_n psal_n 109.4_o without_o limit_n psal_n 119.164_o but_o the_o great_a work_n be_v to_o practice_v this_o duty_n right_o for_o holiness_n only_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n here_o we_o have_v need_n say_v lord_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v luke_n 11.1_o and_o that_o not_o only_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n but_o as_o to_o the_o manner_n both_o which_o be_v teach_v by_o christ_n in_o some_o measure_n in_o that_o brief_a pattern_n of_o prayer_n which_o he_o teach_v his_o disciple_n but_o for_o the_o understanding_n of_o it_o we_o must_v consult_v the_o whole_a word_n 2_o tim._n 3.16_o 17._o and_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n to_o guide_v we_o in_o the_o duty_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o pray_v by_o the_o spirit_n i._n e._n the_o holy_a ghost_n judas_n 20._o eph._n 2.18_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n only_o guide_v and_o enable_v our_o soul_n to_o pray_v aright_o and_o that_o you_o may_v do_v so_o take_v these_o rule_n 1._o you_o must_v pray_v with_o your_o heart_n and_o spirit_n isa_n 26.9_o joh._n 4.24_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o prayer_n principal_o reside_v gal._n 4.6_o eph._n 1.17_o with_o understanding_n 1_o cor._n 14.15_o 16._o for_o we_o be_v renew_v in_o knowledge_n col._n 3.10_o 2_o pet._n 1.3_o so_o that_o pray_v in_o ignorance_n can_v sanctify_v and_o it_o must_v be_v with_o sincere_a hearty_a desire_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n we_o ask_v in_o prayer_n for_o god_n see_v the_o heart_n psal_n 62.8_o prayer_n be_v chief_o a_o heart-work_n psal_n 27.8_o god_n hear_v the_o heart_n without_o the_o mouth_n but_o never_o hear_v the_o mouth_n acceptable_o without_o the_o heart_n 1_o sam._n 1.13_o your_o prayer_n be_v odious_a hypocrisy_n mock_v of_o god_n and_o take_v his_o name_n
5_o 6_o 7._o and_o in_o public_a assembly_n heb._n 10.25_o zach._n 14.16_o 17._o and_o doubtless_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v use_v for_o the_o attainment_n of_o holiness_n as_o may_v be_v prove_v first_o in_o general_n because_o god_n communicate_v all_o salvation_n to_o a_o people_n ordinary_o by_o or_o in_o a_o church_n either_o by_o take_v they_o into_o fellowship_n or_o hold_v forth_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n by_o his_o church_n to_o the_o world_n a_o church_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n where_o god_n dwell_v 1_o tim._n 3.15_o he_o have_v place_v his_o name_n and_o salvation_n there_o as_o in_o jerusalem_n of_o old_a joel_n 2.32_o 2_o chron._n 6.5_o 6._o he_o have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n those_o officer_n and_o ordinance_n whereby_o he_o convert_v other_o 1_o cor._n 12.28_o his_o spring_n be_v there_o psal_n 87._o he_o make_v the_o several_a member_n of_o a_o church_n instrument_n for_o the_o conveyance_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o fullness_n from_o one_o to_o another_o as_o the_o member_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n convey_v to_o each_o other_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o head_n eph._n 4.16_o all_o the_o newborn_a be_v bring_v forth_o and_o nourish_v by_o the_o church_n isa_n 66.8_o 10._o ch_z 49.20_o &_o 60.4_o and_o therefore_o all_o that_o will_v be_v save_v shall_v join_v to_o a_o church_n they_o shall_v prosper_v that_o love_n the_o church_n so_o as_o to_o stand_v in_o its_o gate_n and_o unite_v as_o member_n brethren_n and_o companion_n psal_n 122.2_o 4_o 6._o and_o wrath_n be_v denounce_v against_o those_o that_o be_v not_o member_n of_o it_o at_o least_o of_o the_o mystical_a body_n they_o can_v have_v god_n for_o their_o father_n that_o have_v not_o that_o for_o their_o mother_n can._n 1.7_o 8._o this_o make_v those_o that_o desire_v fellowship_n with_o god_n to_o take_v hold_n of_o the_o skirt_n of_o his_o people_n zech._n 8.23_o 2._o in_o particular_a fellowship_n with_o the_o saint_n conduce_v to_o holiness_n many_o way_n 1._o by_o manifold_a help_n to_o holiness_n which_o be_v receive_v thereby_o as_o 1._o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n act._n 2.42_o isa_n 2.3_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o and_o all_o the_o ministerial_a office_n and_o labour_n in_o watch_v over_o soul_n heb._n 13.17_o 1_o thess_n 5.12_o 13._o isa_n 25.6_o none_o of_o these_o help_n can_v be_v enjoy_v without_o fellowship_n of_o saint_n each_o with_o other_o and_o if_o believer_n have_v be_v to_o have_v stand_v single_a by_o themselves_o and_o not_o maintain_v fellowship_n with_o each_o other_o for_o mutual_a assistance_n and_o common_a good_a none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v have_v continue_v neither_o can_v any_o believer_n be_v extant_a at_o this_o day_n in_o a_o ordinary_a way_n but_o even_o the_o very_a name_n of_o believer_n have_v be_v abolish_v 2._o mutual_a prayer_n which_o be_v the_o more_o forcible_a when_o all_o pray_v together_o mat._n 18.19_o 20._o 2_o cor._n 1.10_o 11._o jam._n 5.16_o rom._n 15.30_o 3._o mutual_a admonition_n instruction_n consolation_n to_o help_v each_o other_o when_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o fall_v and_o to_o promote_v the_o good_a work_n in_o each_o other_o 1_o thess_n 5.14_o he_o that_o walk_v with_o the_o wise_n shall_v be_v wise_a prov._n 13.20_o wo_n to_o he_o that_o be_v alone_o when_o he_o fall_v see_v eccl._n 4.9_o 12._o in_o church-fellowship_n there_o be_v many_o helper_n many_o to_o watch_v soldier_n have_v their_o security_n in_o company_n and_o the_o church_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o army_n with_o banner_n cant._n 6.10_o so_o for_o quicken_a affection_n iron_n sharpen_v iron_n prov._n 27.17_o likewise_o the_o counsel_n of_o a_o friend_n like_o ointment_n and_o perfume_n rejoice_v the_o heart_n prov._n 27.9_o yea_o the_o wound_n and_o reproof_n of_o the_o righteous_a be_v as_o precious_a balm_n psal_n 141.5_o 4._o external_n support_v which_o mitigate_v affliction_n and_o be_v to_o be_v communicate_v mutual_o eph._n 4.28_o 1_o pet._n 4.9_o 10._o the_o affliction_n be_v increase_v when_o none_o care_v for_o our_o soul_n psal_n 142.4_o 5._o excommunication_n when_o offence_n be_v exceed_o heinous_a or_o man_n obstinate_a in_o sin_n this_o ordinance_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v 1_o cor._n 5.5_o better_o and_o more_o hopeful_a it_o be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o the_o church_n for_o a_o person_n amendment_n than_o to_o be_v whole_o without_o the_o church_n at_o all_o time_n and_o better_a to_o be_v a_o lose_a sheep_n than_o a_o goat_n or_o swine_n for_o excommunication_n cut_v off_o actual_a communion_n only_o until_o repentance_n be_v evident_a and_o not_o absolute_o abolish_v the_o title_n and_o relation_n of_o a_o brother_n and_o church-member_n though_o it_o judge_v one_o to_o be_v a_o unnatural_a brother_n and_o a_o pernicious_a rot_a member_n at_o present_a not_o fit_a for_o act_n of_o communion_n beside_o admonition_n which_o be_v still_o to_o be_v afford_v 2_o thes_n 3.15_o and_o any_o mean_n be_v to_o be_v use_v that_o may_v serve_v to_o cure_n and_o restore_v he_o the_o church_n reach_v forth_o a_o hand_n to_o help_v such_o a_o person_n though_o they_o do_v not_o join_v hand_n in_o fellowship_n with_o he_o or_o it_o communicate_v to_o he_o not_o with_o he_o yet_o if_o he_o have_v not_o so_o much_o grace_n as_o to_o repent_v it_o be_v better_a he_o have_v never_o know_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n 2_o pet._n 2.21_o 6._o the_o lively_a example_n of_o saint_n be_v before_o our_o eye_n in_o church-fellowship_n to_o teach_v and_o encourage_v phil._n 3.17_o ch_n 4.9_o 2_o tim._n 3.10_o 11._o 2_o cor._n 9.2_o 2_o by_o those_o holy_a duty_n that_o be_v require_v and_o do_v appertain_v to_o this_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n all_o act_n that_o belong_v to_o this_o fellowship_n be_v holy_a as_o hear_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n prayer_n mutual_a admonition_n etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v consider_v some_o such_o holy_a act_n whereby_o we_o be_v rather_o doer_n than_o receiver_n and_o which_o we_o perform_v towards_o other_o as_o 1._o godly_a discourse_n teach_v admonish_a comfort_v other_o in_o christ_n which_o we_o can_v so_o perform_v towards_o other_o as_o towards_o those_o we_o have_v strict_a fellowship_n with_o in_o christ_n other_o like_a swine_n trample_v these_o jewel_n under_o foot_n and_o saint_n therefore_o be_v force_v to_o refrain_v from_o godly_a discourse_n in_o their_o company_n amos_n 5.10_o 13_o 16._o and_o 6.10_o but_o holy_a discourse_n be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v practise_v with_o they_o mal._n 3.16_o and_o be_v great_o to_o the_o advantage_n of_o holiness_n prov._n 11.25_o 2._o in_o help_v succour_a and_o converse_v with_o christ_n in_o his_o member_n we_o do_v good_a to_o christ_n in_o his_o member_n in_o church-fellowship_n and_o we_o ourselves_o as_o member_n of_o christ_n act_n as_o well_o from_o christ_n as_o towards_o christ_n whereas_o if_o we_o do_v good_a to_o other_o without_o we_o do_v good_a only_o for_o christ_n sake_n but_o not_o to_o christ_n mat._n 25.35_o 49._o psal_n 16.2_o 3._o we_o have_v advantage_n in_o general_n to_o do_v all_o duty_n that_o belong_v to_o we_o as_o member_n of_o christ_n to_o fellow-member_n which_o we_o can_v do_v if_o separate_v from_o they_o as_o a_o natural_a member_n can_v perform_v its_o office_n to_o other_o member_n if_o separate_v from_o they_o 2_o the_o mean_n must_v be_v use_v right_o for_o the_o attain_n of_o holiness_n only_o in_o christ_n 1._o one_o rule_n be_v do_v not_o trust_v on_o church-membership_a or_o on_o church_n as_o if_o this_o or_o that_o relation_n in_o fellowship_n commend_v you_o to_o god_n of_o itself_o whereas_o a_o churchway_n be_v but_o a_o help_n to_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o that_o fellowship_n the_o israelite_n stumble_v at_o christ_n by_o trust_v on_o their_o carnal_a privilege_n and_o set_v they_o in_o opposition_n to_o christ_n whereas_o they_o shall_v have_v only_o make_v they_o subservient_fw-fr to_o christ_n confidence_n in_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v abandon_v as_o paul_n example_n teach_v phil._n 3.3_o 4_o 5._o etc._n etc._n we_o must_v not_o glory_n in_o paul_n apollo_n cephas_n but_o in_o christ_n else_o we_o glory_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o in_o man_n 1_o cor._n 1.12_o 13._o &_o 3.21_o trust_v on_o church-priviledge_n be_v a_o inlett_n to_o formality_n and_o licentiousness_n jer._n 7.4_o 8_o 9_o 10._o and_o thence_o the_o corruption_n of_o church_n isa_n 1.10_o 2_o tim._n 2.20_o 2._o follow_v no_o church_n any_o further_a than_o you_o may_v follow_v it_o in_o the_o way_n of_o christ_n and_o keep_v fellowship_n with_o it_o only_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o follow_v christ_n and_o have_v fellowship_n with_o christ_n 1_o joh._n 1.3_o zech._n 8.23_o if_o a_o church_n
that_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o new_a man_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o as_o in_o a_o natural_a condition_n and_o use_v all_o mean_n of_o holiness_n right_o for_o this_o end_n now_o that_o this_o be_v a_o excellent_a advantageous_a way_n appear_v by_o the_o follow_a desirable_a property_n of_o it_o 1._o it_o have_v this_o property_n that_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o abasement_n of_o all_o flesh_n and_o exaltation_n of_o god_n only_o in_o his_o grace_n and_o power_n through_o christ_n and_o so_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n design_n in_o all_o his_o work_n and_o the_o end_n that_o he_o aim_v at_o rom._n 11.6_o isa_n 2.17_o ezek._n 36.21_o 22.31.32_o psal_n 145.4_o and_o a_o fit_a mean_n for_o the_o attain_v the_o end_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o aim_v at_o in_o the_o first_o place_n which_o be_v the_o hallow_n sanctify_a and_o glorify_v god_n name_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a petition_n mat._n 6._o and_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o our_o act_n 1_o cor._n 10.31_o be_v the_o end_n of_o give_v the_o law_n rom._n 3.19_o 20._o god_n make_v all_o thing_n for_o christ_n and_o will_v have_v he_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n in_o all_o col._n 1.17_o 18._o that_o the_o father_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o the_o son_n joh._n 14.13_o and_o this_o property_n of_o it_o be_v a_o great_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o character_n of_o his_o image_n stamp_v upon_o it_o we_o may_v say_v that_o it_o be_v like_o he_o and_o a_o way_n according_a to_o his_o heart_n as_o christ_n prove_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o this_o argument_n joh._n 7.18_o and_o paul_n prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o of_o sanctification_n and_o salvation_n by_o grace_n through_o faith_n to_o be_v of_o god_n because_o it_o exclude_v all_o boasting_n of_o the_o creature_n rom._n 3.27_o 28._o 1_o cor._n 1.29.30_o 31._o eph._n 3.8_o 9_o this_o property_n appear_v evident_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o sanctification_n by_o christ_n in_o we_o through_o faith_n for_o first_o it_o show_v that_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o by_o our_o natural_a will_n or_o any_o power_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o god_n will_v not_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o way_n rom._n 7.18_o however_o nature_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o law_n or_o natural_a help_n col._n 3.21_o and_o so_o it_o serve_v to_o work_v self-loathing_a and_o abasement_n and_o to_o make_v we_o look_v upon_o nature_n as_o desperate_o wicked_a and_o past_a cure_n and_o to_o be_v put_v off_o not_o reform_v by_o put_v on_o christ_n it_o remain_v wicked_a and_o only_o wicked_a after_o we_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n 2._o it_o show_v that_o all_o our_o good_a work_n and_o live_n to_o god_n be_v not_o by_o our_o own_o power_n and_o strength_n at_o all_o but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n live_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n and_o that_o god_n enable_v we_o to_o act_v not_o mere_o according_a to_o our_o natural_a power_n as_o he_o enable_v carnal_a man_n and_o all_o other_o creature_n but_o above_o our_o own_o power_n by_o christ_n unite_v to_o we_o and_o in_o we_o through_o the_o spirit_n all_o man_n live_v move_v and_o have_v their_o be_v in_o he_o and_o by_o his_o universal_a support_n and_o maintenance_n of_o nature_n in_o its_o be_v and_o activity_n they_o act_n heb._n 1.3_o so_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o act_n as_o creature_n belong_v to_o god_n but_o god_n act_v more_o immediate_o in_o his_o people_n who_o be_v one_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n with_o christ_n and_o act_v not_o by_o their_o own_o power_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o as_o close_o unite_v to_o he_o and_o be_v the_o live_a temple_n of_o his_o spirit_n so_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o immediate_a principal_a agent_n of_o all_o their_o good_a work_n and_o they_o be_v christ_n work_n proper_o who_o work_v all_o our_o work_n in_o we_o and_o for_o we_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v the_o saint_n work_v by_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n by_o who_o light_n and_o power_n the_o faculty_n of_o the_o saint_n do_v act_n and_o be_v act_v gal._n 2.20_o eph._n 3.16_o 17._o colos_n 1.1_o so_o we_o be_v to_o ascribe_v all_o our_o work_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o thank_v he_o for_o they_o as_o free_a gift_n 1_o cor._n 15.10_o phil._n 1.11_o god_n enable_v we_o to_o act_v not_o by_o ourselves_o as_o he_o do_v other_o but_o by_o himself_o the_o wicked_a be_v support_v in_o act_v only_o according_a to_o their_o own_o nature_n so_o they_o act_v wicked_o thus_o all_o be_v say_v to_o live_v move_v and_o have_v their_o be_v in_o god_n act_v 17.27_o but_o god_n enable_v we_o to_o conquer_v sin_n not_o by_o ourselves_o but_o by_o himself_o hos_fw-la 1.7_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o enable_v we_o do_v not_o only_o belong_v to_o he_o which_o the_o pharisee_n can_v not_o but_o ascribe_v to_o he_o luk._n 18.11_o but_o also_o the_o glory_n of_o do_v all_o in_o we_o and_o yet_o we_o work_v as_o one_o with_o christ_n even_o as_o he_o work_v as_o one_o with_o the_o father_n by_o the_o father_n work_v in_o he_o we_o act_v as_o branch_n by_o the_o juice_n of_o the_o vine_n as_o member_n by_o the_o animal_n spirit_n of_o the_o head_n and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n by_o marriage_n to_o he_o as_o our_o husband_n and_o work_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o he_o as_o the_o live_a bread_n that_o we_o feed_v on_o he_o be_v all_o in_o the_o new_a man_n colos_n 3.11_o and_o all_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v good_a in_o he_o 2_o cor._n 1.20_o 2._o it_o have_v this_o property_n that_o it_o consist_v well_o with_o other_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o contrary_a error_n do_v not_o and_o hence_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o confirm_v we_o in_o many_o other_o point_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a by_o its_o harmony_n with_o other_o truth_n and_o sit_v link_a with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o golden_a chain_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n and_o evidence_v they_o to_o be_v true_a by_o their_o harmony_n with_o it_o i_o have_v show_v that_o man_n mistake_v the_o true_a way_n of_o sanctification_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n in_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o decline_v from_o the_o truth_n to_o popish_a socinian_n and_o arminian_n tenant_n because_o man_n can_v serious_o take_v that_o for_o truth_n which_o they_o judge_v not_o to_o be_v according_a to_o godliness_n but_o this_o way_n of_o holiness_n will_v evidence_n that_o those_o gospel_n doctrine_n which_o they_o refuse_v be_v according_a to_o godliness_n and_o that_o those_o tenant_n which_o a_o blind_a zeal_n for_o holiness_n move_v they_o to_o embrace_v be_v indeed_o contrary_a to_o holiness_n however_o satan_n appear_v to_o their_o natural_a understanding_n as_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n in_o such_o tenant_n whatever_o man_n say_v its_o certain_a that_o legalist_n be_v indeed_o the_o antinomian_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o some_o truth_n confirm_v by_o it_o 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n viz._n not_o only_o the_o gild_n of_o adam_n sin_n and_o a_o corrupt_a nature_n but_o utter_a impotency_n to_o do_v spiritual_a good_a and_o proneness_n to_o sin_n which_o be_v death_n to_o god_n in_o all_o people_n according_a to_o nature_n psal_n 51.5_o rom._n 5.12_o there_o be_v a_o utter_a inability_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n true_o in_o any_o point_n many_o deny_v this_o doctrine_n because_o they_o think_v that_o if_o people_n believe_v this_o they_o will_v excuse_v their_o sin_n by_o it_o and_o be_v apt_a to_o despair_v of_o all_o strive_v to_o do_v good_a work_n and_o leave_v off_o all_o endeavour_n and_o grow_v licentious_a and_o they_o think_v it_o will_v be_v more_o conduce_v to_o godliness_n to_o hold_v and_o teach_v either_o that_o there_o be_v no_o original_a sin_n or_o corruption_n derive_v from_o adam_n or_o at_o least_o it_o be_v do_v away_o either_o in_o the_o world_n by_o universal_a redemption_n or_o in_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n and_o that_o there_o be_v freewill_n restore_v whereby_o people_n be_v able_a to_o incline_v themselves_o to_o do_v good_a that_o man_n may_v be_v more_o encourage_v to_o set_v upon_o good_a work_n and_o their_o neglect_n make_v inexcusable_a all_o this_o be_v indeed_o forcible_a against_o seek_v and_o endeavour_v for_o holiness_n by_o the_o freewill_n and_o power_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v the_o way_n of_o endeavour_v which_o i_o direct_v you_o to_o avoid_v and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o new_a way_n to_o holiness_n since_o the_o fall_n original_a sin_n may_v make_v we_o despair_v but_o there_o be_v a_o new_a birth_n a_o new_a heart_n a_o new_a creature_n and_o
of_o eden_n rather_o than_o the_o wilderness_n of_o sinai_n act._n 9.31_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o spirit_n our_o guide_n to_o be_v our_o comforter_n and_o not_o a_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n rom._n 8.15_o peace_n and_o joy_n be_v great_a duty_n in_o this_o way_n phil._n 4.4_o 5_o 6._o god_n do_v not_o drive_v we_o on_o with_o whip_n and_o terror_n and_o by_o the_o rod_n of_o the_o schoolmaster_n of_o the_o law_n but_o lead_v we_o and_o win_v we_o to_o walk_v in_o his_o way_n by_o allurement_n cant._n 1.3_o hos_fw-la 11.4_o see_v such_o allurement_n 2_o cor._n 5.14_o 15._o c._n 7.1_o rom._n 12.1_o 5._o our_o very_a move_a act_v walk_v in_o this_o way_n be_v a_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n every_o good_a work_n be_v do_v with_o pleasure_n the_o very_a labour_n of_o the_o way_n be_v pleasant_a carnal_a man_n wish_v duty_n be_v not_o necessary_a and_o they_o be_v burdensome_a to_o they_o but_o they_o be_v pleasant_a to_o we_o because_o we_o do_v not_o gain_v holiness_n by_o our_o own_o carnal_a wrestle_a with_o our_o lust_n and_o cross_v they_o out_o of_o carnal_a fear_n with_o regret_n and_o grief_n and_o set_v conscience_n and_o the_o law_n against_o they_o to_o hinder_v their_o act_n but_o we_o act_v natural_o according_a to_o the_o new_a nature_n and_o perform_v our_o own_o new_a spiritual_a desire_n and_o lust_n by_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o our_o lust_n and_o pleasure_n in_o sin_n be_v not_o only_o restrain_v but_o take_v away_o in_o christ_n and_o pleasure_n in_o holiness_n free_o give_v we_o and_o implant_v in_o we_o rom._n 8.5_o gal._n 5.17_o 24._o joh._n 4.34_o psal_n 40.8_o psal_n 119.14_o 16_o 20._o we_o have_v a_o new_a taste_n and_o savour_n love_n lust_n and_o like_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o look_v on_o the_o law_n not_o as_o a_o burden_n but_o as_o our_o privilege_n in_o christ_n 6._o it_o be_v a_o high_a exalt_a way_n above_o all_o other_o way_n unto_o this_o way_n the_o prophet_n habbakuk_n be_v exalt_v when_o upon_o the_o failure_n of_o all_o visible_a help_n and_o support_v he_o resolve_v to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o god_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o make_v god_n his_o strength_n by_o faith_n his_o foot_n shall_v be_v as_o hind_n foot_n and_o shall_v walk_v upon_o his_o high_a place_n hab._n 3.18_o 19_o these_o be_v the_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o god_n have_v set_v we_o in_o be_v quicken_v and_o raise_v up_o together_o with_o he_o eph._n 2.5_o 6._o 1._o we_o live_v high_a here_o for_o we_o live_v not_o by_o the_o flesh_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o christ_n in_o we_o with_o all_o his_o fullness_n rom._n 8.1_o 2._o gal._n 2.20_o c._n 5.25_o we_o walk_v in_o fellowship_n with_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o walk_v about_o in_o we_o 2_o cor._n 6.18_o and_o therefore_o our_o work_n be_v of_o high_a price_n and_o excellency_n than_o the_o work_n of_o other_o because_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o god_n joh._n 3.21_o and_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o god_n spirit_n gal._n 5._o phil._n 1.11_o and_o we_o may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v accept_v and_o good_a by_o our_o gospel_n principle_n which_o other_o have_v not_o rom._n 7.6_o 2._o we_o be_v enable_v to_o the_o most_o difficult_a duty_n phil._n 4.1_o 3._o and_o nothing_o be_v too_o hard_a for_o we_o see_v the_o great_a work_n do_v by_o faith_n heb._n 11._o mar._n 9.23_o work_v that_o carnal_a man_n think_v folly_n and_o madness_n to_o venture_v upon_o they_o be_v so_o great_a and_o honourable_a achievement_n in_o do_v and_o suffer_v for_o christ_n 3._o we_o walk_v in_o a_o honourable_a state_n with_o god_n and_o on_o honourable_a term_n not_o as_o guilty_a creature_n to_o get_v our_o pardon_n by_o work_n nor_o as_o bond-servant_n to_o earn_v our_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o as_o son_n and_o heir_n walk_v towards_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o that_o happiness_n to_o which_o we_o have_v a_o title_n and_o so_o we_o have_v much_o boldness_n in_o god_n presence_n gal._n 4.6_o 7._o we_o can_v approach_v near_o to_o god_n than_o other_o and_o walk_v before_o he_o confident_o without_o slavish_a fear_n not_o as_o stranger_n but_o as_o such_o who_o be_v of_o his_o own_o family_n eph._n 2.19_o 20._o and_o this_o prompt_v we_o to_o do_v great_a thing_n than_o other_o walking_z as_o free_a man_n rom._n 6.17_o 18._o joh._n 8.35_o 36._o it_o be_v a_o kingly_a way_n the_o law_n to_o we_o be_v a_o royal_a law_n a_o law_n of_o liberty_n and_o our_o privilege_n not_o a_o bond_n and_o yoke_n of_o compulsion_n 4._o it_o be_v the_o way_n only_o of_o those_o that_o be_v honourable_a and_o precious_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n even_o his_o elect_n and_o redeem_a one_o who_o special_a privilege_n it_o be_v to_o walk_v therein_o no_o unclean_a beast_n go_v there_o jer._n 35.8_o 9_o no_o carnal_a man_n can_v walk_v in_o this_o way_n but_o only_o those_o that_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n joh._n 6.44_o 45_o 46._o nor_o will_v it_o have_v come_v into_o our_o heart_n without_o divine_a revelation_n 5._o the_o prepare_v this_o way_n cost_n christ_n very_o dear_a it_o be_v a_o costly_a way_n heb._n 10.19_o 20._o 1_o pet._n 3.18_o 6._o it_o be_v a_o good_a old_a way_n wherein_o thou_o may_v follow_v the_o footstep_n of_o all_o the_o flock_n 7._o it_o be_v the_o way_n to_o perfection_n it_o lead_v to_o such_o holiness_n which_o shall_v in_o a_o while_n be_v absolute_o perfect_a it_o differ_v only_o in_o the_o degree_n and_o manner_n of_o manifestation_n from_o the_o holiness_n of_o heaven_n there_o the_o saint_n live_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o the_o same_o god_n in_o all_o 1_o cor._n 15.28_o joh._n 4.14_o and_o have_v the_o image_n of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a man_n 1_o cor._n 15.49_o only_o here_o we_o have_v but_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8.23_o and_o live_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o sight_n 2_o cor._n 5.7_o and_o be_v not_o full_o grow_v in_o christ_n eph._n 4.13_o sanctification_n in_o christ_n be_v glorification_n begin_v as_o glorification_n be_v sanctification_n perfect_v errata_fw-la page_n 6._o l._n 18._o r._n work_n p._n 7._o l._n 5._o à_fw-la sine_fw-la for_o not_o r._n yet_o p._n 23._o l._n 6._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la for_o that_o r._n there_o p._n 27._o l._n 18._o for_o either_o rather_o p._n 33._o l._n 9_o for_o a_o r._n in_o p._n 36._o l._n 5._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la r._n yet_o for_o that_o p._n 41._o l._n 9_o à_fw-la fi_fw-la r._n receive_v for_o recover_v p._n 42._o after_o they_o r._n it_o be_v better_a if_o p._n 42._o l._n 2._o for_o god_n r._n go_n p._n 46._o l._n 7._o for_o hope_n r._n trope_n ibid._n l._n 11._o for_o this_o r._n the._n p._n 46._o l._n 17._o for_o particular_n r._n particular_o p._n 48._o l._n 4._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la r._n for_o wise_o etc._n etc._n r._n wisdom_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o etc._n etc._n p._n 49._o l._n 19_o r._n from_o christ_n p._n 52._o l._n 3._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la for_o have_v r._n have_v p._n 63._o l._n 19_o r._n principal_a act_n p._n 64._o l._n 13._o add_v after_o lord_n call_v hope_v in_o the_o lord_n because_o etc._n etc._n p._n 65._o l._n 12._o for_o procure_v r._n secure_a p._n 66._o l._n 5._o after_o right_a r._n to_o use_v any_o instrument_n for_o the_o actual_a etc._n etc._n p._n 68_o l._n 4._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la for_o right_a title_n r._n right_a or_o title_n ib._n l._n 2._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la for_o condition_n r._n conditional_a work_n p._n 69._o l._n 2._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la r._n 5_o true_a etc._n etc._n p._n 73._o l._n 19_o put_v that_o after_o first_o p._n 80._o l._n 21._o r._n it_o be_v p._n 85._o l._n 6._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la for_o on_o r._n off_z p._n 87._o l._n 7._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la for_o it_o have_v r._n it_o be_v p._n 88_o l._n 22._o for_o lie_a r._n thing_n p._n 95._o l._n 1._o for_o do_v r._n toil_n more_o p._n 97._o l._n 5._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la r._n for_o the_o worst_a p._n 108._o l._n 12._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la r._n do_v away_o p._n 114._o l._n 8._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la for_o way_n r._n wage_n ib._n l._n 16._o for_o which_o r._n what_o p._n 122._o l._n 18._o r._n for_o it_o prescribe_v etc._n etc._n p._n 125._o l._n 6._o these_o word_n without_o any_o far_a practice_n of_o holiness_n add_v they_o after_o the_o l._n 14._o p._n 160._o l._n 6._o r._n this_o be_v p._n 171._o l._n 10._o de_fw-la that_o p._n 172._o l._n 3._o à_fw-la fi_fw-la r._n of_o it_o it_o etc._n etc._n p._n 194._o l._n 7._o r._n to_o the_o life_n of_o etc._n etc._n p._n 196._o l._n 12._o r._n by_o all_o the_o etc._n etc._n p._n 197._o l._n 20._o free_a salvation_n p._n 201
on_o thy_o sin_n and_o misery_n and_o christ_n excellency_n that_o so_o thou_o may_v be_v incline_v in_o thy_o heart_n to_o believe_v song_n 1.3_o gal._n 2.16_o ps_n 9.10_o for_o this_o be_v the_o way_n god_n use_v to_o beget_v faith_n isa_n 55.3_o but_o if_o thou_o have_v a_o desire_n and_o inclination_n to_o fly_v from_o thyself_o to_o christ_n in_o the_o bent_n of_o thy_o heart_n so_o that_o thou_o prefer_v christ_n above_o all_o than_o the_o spirit_n have_v begin_v and_o will_v carry_v on_o the_o work_n so_o that_o now_o thou_o may_v pray_v confident_o for_o faith_n cant._n 1.4_o luk._n 11.13_o mar._n 9.24_o obj._n iii_o but_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v god_n heb._n 12.14_o and_o how_o shall_v i_o do_v to_o get_v holiness_n and_o i_o can_v sanctify_v myself_o and_o this_o confidence_n you_o speak_v of_o may_v slacken_v my_o diligence_n a._n if_o thou_o have_v righteousness_n in_o christ_n god_n will_v make_v thou_o holy_a and_o this_o confidence_n be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o get_v holiness_n because_o of_o that_o righteousness_n rom._n 5.21_o the_o new_a covenant_n be_v confirm_v in_o he_o which_o promise_v a_o new_a heart_n if_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o power_n and_o quicken_v by_o the_o same_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n whereby_o thou_o be_v justify_v col._n 2.12_o 13._o exhort_v iii_o it_o exhort_v they_o that_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n 1._o to_o walk_v humble_o as_o nothing_o of_o themselves_o to_o acknowledge_v themselves_o enemy_n to_o god_n by_o nature_n and_o acknowledge_v sin_n in_o the_o greatness_n and_o heinousness_n of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v save_v free_o by_o a_o righteousness_n of_o another_o not_o by_o their_o own_o yea_o so_o far_o fall_v that_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n will_v have_v be_v against_o they_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v satisfy_v psal_n 71.16_o rom._n 3.27_o but_o now_o see_v that_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v above_o their_o sin_n ezek._n 26.31_o 2._o to_o praise_v and_o glorify_v god_n through_o christ_n for_o this_o grace_n oh_o what_o abundant_a grace_n and_o love_n appear_v in_o god_n wash_v and_o cleanse_v we_o by_o his_o son_n blood_n rev._n 1.5_o gal._n 2.20_o and_o in_o make_v his_o son_n sin_n and_o curse_n for_o we_o rom._n 5.5_o 8._o 1_o joh._n 4.9_o 10._o ch._n 3.16_o 2_o cor._n 8.9_o and_o what_o a_o glorious_a excellent_a righteousness_n have_v god_n give_v we_o in_o christ_n isa_n 61.10_o 3._o to_o walk_v comfortable_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o this_o righteousness_n isa_n 40.1_o 2._o triumph_n over_o sin_n and_o affliction_n rom._n 8.33.39_o be_v confident_a in_o expect_v great_a thing_n from_o god_n heb._n 10.22_o for_o though_o you_o be_v unworthy_a and_o grace_n will_v show_v you_o your_o own_o unworthiness_n yet_o you_o stand_v upon_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n glory_n in_o the_o hope_n of_o god_n glory_n for_o if_o christ_n die_v to_o reconcile_v you_o when_o you_o be_v enemy_n much_o more_o will_v he_o save_v you_o by_o his_o life_n now_o you_o be_v reconcile_v rom._n 5.3_o 10._o ask_v bold_o for_o what_o you_o want_v for_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n manhood_n as_o the_o mercy-seat_n when_o ever_o sin_n sting_v you_o and_o objection_n trouble_v you_o look_v to_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n confess_v sin_n and_o trust_n for_o pardon_n meditate_v on_o christ_n righteousness_n and_o the_o abundance_n of_o grace_n in_o he_o rom._n 8.32_o if_o you_o find_v never_o so_o much_o ungodliness_n no_o good_a qualification_n yet_o christ_n be_v at_o hand_n for_o your_o comfort_n isa_n 50.10_o 2_o thes_n 2.16_o 17._o in_o all_o your_o sin_n apply_v yourselves_o to_o this_o fountain_n zach._n 13._o 1_o joh._n 1.7_o if_o sin_n lie_v on_o conscience_n it_o weaken_v peace_n and_o spiritual_a strength_n lie_v not_o under_o guilt_n with_o a_o slavish_a fear_n you_o have_v a_o righteousness_n to_o deliver_v you_o from_o it_o apply_v it_o by_o faith_n that_o you_o may_v have_v no_o more_o conscience_n of_o sin_n as_o condemn_v heb._n 10.2_o psal_n 32._o you_o have_v a_o better_a righteousness_n than_o any_o perfectionist_n can_v have_v exhort_v iv_o hold_v fast_o this_o way_n of_o justification_n notwithstanding_o all_o the_o noise_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o world_n against_o it_o for_o the_o devil_n will_v strive_v to_o scare_v you_o out_o of_o it_o or_o steal_v it_o from_o you_o as_o he_o do_v from_o the_o jew_n from_o the_o galatian_n the_o papist_n and_o many_o protestant_n gal._n 1.6_o and_o the_o apostle_n reckon_v it_o be_v by_o a_o spiritual_a bewitchery_n he_o will_v strive_v to_o get_v you_o to_o trust_v on_o work_n and_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v for_o the_o promote_a of_o holiness_n and_o to_o trust_v on_o work_n to_o get_v christ_n and_o to_o lay_v work_v low_a in_o the_o foundation_n if_o you_o lose_v this_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n under_o any_o colour_n or_o pretence_n whatever_o you_o lose_v all_o gal._n 5.2_o 3._o do_v not_o so_o dishonour_n christ_n as_o to_o think_v of_o procure_v that_o by_o work_n which_o you_o have_v full_o in_o christ_n think_v not_o that_o the_o gospel_n require_v another_o justification_n to_o gain_v this_o for_o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o legal_a covenant_n but_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o be_v justify_v be_v heir_n by_o adoption_n and_o promise_n gal._n 3.25_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o glorifi_v god_n and_o abase_v the_o creature_n which_o be_v a_o great_a mark_n of_o its_o truth_n beware_v therefore_o of_o carnal_a reason_n which_o will_v go_v quite_o contrary_a and_o make_v christ_n righteousness_n a_o stumble_a stone_n to_o thou_o 1_o pet._n 2.8_o rom._n 9.32_o ●3_n v._o walk_v as_o one_o that_o enjoy_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n let_v he_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o it_o walk_v therefore_o in_o holiness_n know_v by_o what_o price_n you_o be_v redeem_v 1_o pet._n 1.17_o 18._o 2_o cor._n 5.14_o 15._o 2_o pet._n 1.5_o 11._o 1_o cor._n 6._o last_o love_v god_n that_o have_v love_v you_o first_o 1_o joh._n 4.19_o psal_n 116.16_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v enable_v to_o holiness_n rom._n 6.14_o particular_o walk_v in_o love_n to_o the_o saint_n exercise_n forgiveness_n to_o your_o enemy_n sense_n of_o your_o own_o sin_n and_o god_n forgive_n you_o will_v cause_v you_o to_o pity_n and_o forgive_v other_o else_o you_o can_v pray_v or_o trust_v for_o forgiveness_n of_o your_o own_o sin_n upon_o reasonable_a ground_n eph._n 4.31_o 32._o mat._n 6.14_o 15._o mat._n 18.21_o desire_v grace_n may_v be_v exalt_v upon_o other_o and_o wait_v patient_o for_o the_o full_a declaration_n of_o justification_n at_o the_o great_a day_n gal._n 5.5_o act._n 3.19_o for_o here_o your_o justification_n be_v know_v only_o by_o faith_n but_o in_o outward_a thing_n you_o be_v deal_v with_o as_o a_o sinner_n then_o your_o righteousness_n shall_v appear_v open_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v deal_v with_o according_a to_o it_o finis_fw-la